Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6
Transcription
Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6
Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Flora & Fauna 1 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Flight of the Phoenix Vol. 6: Flora & Fauna Editors-in-Chief: Claire Bohbot and Sujata Desai Workshop Instructor: Claire Bohbot Grammar Editor: Aaron Vasquez - Middle School English Teacher Artistic Contributions Arranged by: Mrs. Ruth Teitelbaum - Art Teacher Cover art (in order of appearance): Ruhsyl Kapila, Yiyun Wei, and Clarys Paragas. Flight of the Phoenix Vol. 6: Flora & Fauna Carden Day School of San Jose Literary Magazine- First Edition, Copyright 2015. All rights revert back to authors and artists upon publication. Flora & Fauna 2 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Table of Contents Secret Lives of Flora & Fauna Iris, the Goddess of the Rainbow & Art Why Flowers Lose Their Petals Poisseidon & Art Demeter’s Woes & Art 6 7 7 8 The Beginning of the Gladiolus & Art Why the is Sky Blue Narcissus & Art Hecate & Art Why Do Flowers Lose Their Petals? 9 10 10 11 12 Chemistry of Fiction The Pocket Watch “Anna” “Isabella” Mochanite “Zoe” Serum “Adam” 14 18 18 19 21 22 27 The Big Bang The Silver Disk “Damian” Vapor Burglar Back in Time “Arathi” 27 31 37 37 45 55 Dr. Dolittle Goes Abroad X-out 57 The Search for the African Violet 58 “Choochoopopa” 59 “Dingo the Cheetah” 60 The African Savannah 60 Dr. Dolittle’s Wild Adventure 62 The Pink Snows & Art 64 “Whale of the Sea” 68 “The Seahorse” 68 Pushmi-Pullyu 69 The Voyage Down Under 70 WANTED: Sausages A Serious Case of Mercury Poisoning Dr. Dolittle Goes to the Great Barrier Reef “The Beaver” “The Ghost” Hypnotize City Limits & Art Jip’s Bones Mission for Syrup & Art Pink Porky Evil 72 73 77 80 80 81 82 85 86 89 Flowers with Feelings The Deadly Ode Trap “Blooming Purple Flowers” The Rose Assassin Papa Rose “Morning Sun” “Colorful Flower” Flora & Fauna 91 91 92 96 96 96 “Rushyl # 3” Perfect Spring Day Iris & Art The Promise Magnolia & Art “The Egg” 97 97 98 99 102 103 3 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Don’t Mess with the VFT Spring Fever “Beach” 103 104 106 “Anna” “Zoe” 106 106 You Are What You Eat In Spring & Art Blueberry Terror & Art The Berry Bush Bambi’s Transformation & Art Life of a Leaf “A Pine Cone”, “A Whimsical Pine Cone” & Observational Drawing Spring Musings & Art Bambi Berry Becoming an Elk & Art 108 108 111 113 116 116 117 117 119 Life Span of a Leaf Bambi’s Berry Important Lesson & Art A Pair of Haikus & Art Bambi and the Mushroom “Bambi in the Mushrooms” Berry Adventurous Spring, Sprung The Deer Who Turned into an Apple Flowers in Spring 122 122 125 125 128 128 130 130 132 Herbaceous Characters King Basil “Reflections” A Day in the Woods & Art 134 135 137 Holly’s Quest The W Adventure & Art The Grizzly Night 146 154 156 Brave New Species The Zoretta & Art The Peagles & Art “Wild Love” “Rhoohaha” Arctic Monkey “Gisele” The SST “Turtle” Lizard Man 158 162 168 168 169 172 173 178 179 “Bird at Night” “Mousey” James P. Jones “Spring into Bunny” Furaloppakoppa “The Deer” “Leafwing a Dragon” “Ethan” “The Jungle Fox” 182 182 182 184 184 187 188 188 188 Magic Tree House of Horrors The Maze “The Coca-Cola Tree" The Woods & Art Larry’s Cave Flora & Fauna 190 193 194 196 Happy Halloween “Night Sky” The Giving Tree “Observational Drawing” 197 201 202 206 4 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Cave of Wonders Morgiana’s Amazing Adventure “Morgiana’s Travels” The Mechanical Phoenix & Art “Blaze the Phoenix” “The Sitting Lizard” 208 211 211 215 216 “The Phoenix” “The Tiger” The Serpents of the Cave Squeak’s Tail & Art The Important Lizard Lesson & Art LemacCigamEht 216 216 217 222 225 229 Weather Related The 4 Elements “Jessica” The Hurricane & Art “The Hill” “Lauren” The Hole in the Rock & Art A Tale of Clouds “Sunrise” The Mark of the Ocean “The Thunder” The Crash “XTC” 231 238 239 248 248 249 255 261 261 265 266 271 “Merging Worlds” The London Incident The Day I Got Struck by Lightening & Art A New World & Art The Control Room “The House” a series Hurricane Askwith & Art “Building of Kingdom” “#7” “The Tree” a series Isabelle Anderson – 7 Flora & Fauna 271 272 276 285 295 302 303 314 314 315 th 5 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Secret Lives of Flora & Fauna Flora and fauna make up the basic existence of all life, flora meaning plants and fauna meaning wildlife or animals. So it seems only fitting for the sixth edition of the Flight of the Phoenix, to tell the stories of the very life that surrounds us, the flowers, the trees, the birds and the bees. In doing so, this sixth edition gets to the heart of the matter, discovering the building blocks of life: examining the Big Bang and matter, taking an in depth look at the weather, looking at food in a new way, and exploring the role of fauna in children’s books. From animal stories we learn empathy and compassion, from scientific works we learn about the joys of discovery and the perils of failure. Literature exists to teach us, and to teach others, we must start with the basics: flora and fauna. So the stories we begin with are reminiscent of the creation myths of the Native Americans. Also featured are odes to the gods and goddesses that were once thought to preside over the care of the flora and fauna of Greece and Rome. These are the secret lives and beginnings of flora and fauna. Flora & Fauna 6 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Iris, Goddess of the Rainbow Isabelle Anderson – 7 th Iris was the goddess of the rainbow so bright; To the Greeks, she bestowed such pretty light; And the rainbow in the sky was such a pretty sight. Red is just so pretty, like a rose that you can get. And orange is so bright, like a summertime sunset. Yellow like a sunflower, blooming in the fields. And green is like the grass, getting caught under your heels. Aqua, like the ocean waves crashing against the shore. While blue is like the sky, through which birds love to soar. Purple like a lilac, blooming all throughout the spring. And pink is like many tulips, presenting fields fit for a king! As you can see, the rainbow is oh so great, And Iris is a Goddess, whom I could never hate. Flora & Fauna 7 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Why Flowers Lose Petals Isabelle Anderson –7 th Once upon a time, there was a beautiful flower named Mary. Mary was the prettiest flower in the world. But Mary was always bragging about her beauty at any chance she could get. Joan, the queen of all the trees, was starting to get mad at Mary for all her boasting. So one day, Joan cursed Mary, causing all her beautiful petals to fall off; yet still, Mary boasted of her beauty. So Joan cursed all the flowers to lose all their petals, hoping that they and all the flowers in the future would be forever angry at Mary. Poisseidon Mikita Piarvou – 7 th This god is great, for he riddles the sea floor with bones, He is Poseidon, and it is the great ocean he owns. He rides on a shell, drawn by seahorses and hippocampus, And we all know how he caused strife to Odysseus. He rules all tempests and earthquakes, For he makes them, with when anger he shakes. He has a palace at the bottom of the sea And you might remark “It’s quite a sight to see.” Walls of gold and floors of pearl, He has a good life, and lives like an Earl. He is a great god, who isn’t at all a fraud. All sailors who have survived with his help would give him the nod. Flora & Fauna 8 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Demeter’s Woes Cheyenne Garza – 7 th In the great old Grecian days Was the Goddess Demeter, who worked with hay, She liked to work all night and day. Demeter was always in the farm But Persephone was kept away from harm, Until one day Hades came, And took her, much to Demeter’s dismay. Her blessed daughter was taken away, And she looked, but couldn’t find her, I’m afraid to say. In her absence, all the crops began to die, And Hecate exclaimed, “Oh my! Oh My!” Hecate told Hades to give her back her daughter, Hades relented, and returned her in spring and summer Flora & Fauna 9 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Beginning of the Gladiolus Megan Chang – 5 th A unicorn named Skye was walking and stopped at a magical pond, not knowing it was magical. She drank out of the pond and dipped her horn in the pond to cool down. She was so hungry after that. She saw one little flower bud with a long stem. She immediately galloped to it and touched it with her horn to make sure it was safe to eat, when all of a sudden it began to bloom and many flowers popped up upon the long stem. One flower even cut her ear. While the flower was blooming, her blood fell on the flower and stopped the growth of the flower halfway on its stem. That is how the Gladiolus started. Flora & Fauna 10 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Why the Sky is Blue Mikita Piarvou – 7 th One day, Zeus was sitting atop Mount Olympus, painting a picture. Hades, still angry at having lost his chess game the day before, was looking for a way to get back at Zeus. When Hera called for Zeus, Hades came and stole his paints, eleven in all. Hades carried one can of paint on each finger, and the eleventh, the blue one, he balanced on his head. But, Hades was not a great balancer. Hades accidentally dropped his blue paint on the way to Mars, the secret location of the Underworld. The blue paint spilled and covered the atmosphere, making the sky forever blue. Narcissus Yiyun Wei – 6 th Who’s there? Who’s there? A distant voice echoes my own. Every sigh, another soft moan. I turn around, but nobody to see, Until I saw her staring at me. When I asked her to leave my sight, I was ignorant of my action, out of spite, Nemesis heard, and led me to a lake, Where I saw my reflection and the rest was Fate. Now I rest as a white and yellow flower, And Echo has since never cried any louder. Flora & Fauna 11 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Hecate Clarys Paragas – 7 th In the cities of the ancient Greek land Was a shrine with three heads and a torch in each hand The form of Hecate is where she would stand. She was a beautiful goddess with the power of magic But since she had three heads, her love life was tragic. Even though she was single, she wanted to protect the Greeks From evil around the world, week after week. Hecate rescued Persephone from Hades’ possession, Protecting others from evil was her beloved profession. Through her difficulties, dogs always stood by her side Because she knew that good and evil would soon collide. All her works were inscribed in a book, If you want know to more, give it a look! Flora & Fauna 12 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Why do Flowers Lose their Petals? th Arathi Ranga – 8 We all know that flowers lose their petals, but why? Well, one day, long, long ago, there was a beautiful little baby boy named Chad. Chad was spoiled and a brat, but he loved his parents more than anything in the whole world. Chad’s dad was a flower tinker, meaning he made flowers prettier. Sometimes Chad’s dad would bring home a rare, never-before-seen flower for his wife and son to admire. When Chad grew to be 16, he fell in love with a girl. To impress her, he wanted to use some of his dad’s special flowers and give them to her. Unfortunately, Chad’s dad’s flower tinkering company wasn’t doing very well, and he couldn’t afford to give any extras to his lovesick son. Chad didn’t take this news very well and had a huge tantrum. That night, to get revenge, Chad snuck into his dad’s office. In the office, there were multiple books and papers and files about flowers that enticed Chard to snoop around some more. One book caught his eye in particular, Flower Petal Secrets. Chad opened the book and found a recipe for a petal loss potion. He made it and sprayed it on all of his dad’s flowers in the shop. Unfortunately, Chad wasn’t very vigilant when he read the recipe, the potion was extremely contagious and it spread to every flower in the world. Soon, all the flowers in the world started losing all their petals. They would grow back, some perennially, some annually, but they wouldn’t stay more than a week from then on. Flora & Fauna 13 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Chemistry of Fiction The science in science fiction is often exactly that, fiction. The genre bends reality, space and time, resulting in fantastical tales, ripe with lush landscapes, barren wastelands, diabolical villains and strange creatures. Chemistry is a unique word, encompassing both the scientific definition, the science that deals with chemical composition, while also referring to the unknown qualities which attract. In the stories beyond, the elements of physical science are put to the test by the students of the 8th grade. Enjoy the fruits of their labors, (but maybe don’t eat them). Read through their explorations into other periods in time, discover those wary of the future, or those inspired by the past. Delve through the mysteries of creating new substances, either by purpose or on accident. Or jump into a whole new theory about the Big Bang. Doesn’t matter how you go about it, these stories are sure to delight and inspire anyone into contemplating being an astronaut as a career. The accompanying art here asked students to focus on visual themes and symbols based on scientific content. Using metal foil relief patterns, they expanded the theme with lines and colors to create unique patterns and displays of chemistry. Flora & Fauna 14 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Pocket Watch th Janelle Conlan – 8 A 14-year-old boy, Luke, was walking in the park when he noticed an old man sitting on the bench. Luke wanted to take a break and rest. Earlier that day, he hadn't had the best time. At school, they had been playing dodgeball in P.E.; he was hit in the face, and everybody laughed at him. He had also forgotten to turn in an assignment earlier that week and the guilt kept piling as each day passed. In the morning, he had an argument with his mom and he was guessing she was still mad at him. It was on his way walking home from school, that Luke saw this old man sitting on a bench. Luke decided to go and sit next to him. Luke said, “Hi, I'm Luke what is your name?" The old man answered, "Hello, young man. My name is Joe.” “Hi Joe,” responded Luke. “You seem sad Luke, what’s wrong?” asked Joe. Then Luke told him about everything that had happened. The old man assured him not to worry and to just stay positive. Joe told him he had better get going home before his parents started worrying, so he left. The next day Luke returned to the park, where he talked to Joe the previous day, to see if he was there, and he was. So they talked for a while until Luke had to go. Luke went to the park everyday to see Joe and listen to his crazy stories. Joe told Luke stories that were unbelievable. One day, Joe told Luke a story about a young boy who was playing in the woods and when he was running he tripped, fell, and bumped his head. When the boy woke up, his head kind of hurt. He got up and started for his house. But once he got out of the woods, and started walking down the street, he could feel something was different, something was off, yet he didn’t know what it was. The street names were almost all the same and there were still Flora & Fauna 15 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 houses, cafes, restaurants, and stores but something was different. He moved on; he saw a group of people come out of the restaurant and they were dressed weirdly, fancier. He thought it was probably someone’s birthday party with an odd theme or an anniversary party or some fancy club. Then, someone walked out of a coffee shop a little bit down the street and they were dressed the same way. He paused and thought, ‘Is there a new holiday where everyone dresses like they are from the 1980’s and for some reason I didn’t get the memo?’ The boy shook his head trying to get that out of his mind and kept walking. He turned left onto his street to go home. When he reached the house where he lived, he arrived to find that the house was completely changed. The house was blue, a little bit smaller, had a nicer front yard and the car in the driveway was not at all like the car his parents had. It was older looking yet still cool and was red, blue, and black. Then he looked around and realized that almost all the houses looked different, especially the front yards; they were actually nice looking. The grass was pretty green and there were several trees and flowers. Even in the yard of the lady who lived across the street at the end, her yard wasn’t dead with tire marks on the dead grass. He thought to himself good job for her, she learned how to drive and garden. Still curious, he decided to go around town and see what else had changed. He made his way to the park, which luckily was still there. He sat under a tree in the shade and tried to figure out what had happened so far, while he rested. It was a hot day but there was a cool breeze, the birds chirped, and he started to close his eyes and ended up falling asleep. He dreamt about the recent events. He woke up and walked out of the woods and onto the street. First, there was a group of people dressed in neon high socks over their black tight pants and other people in fancy dresses, clothes, and strange hair styles (they looked like Flora & Fauna 16 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 big toddlers who dressed themselves). Then his house and yard were completely different, along with all the other houses and yards. The lady at the end of the street could drive and her yard looked nice. It was like he was in another world. Now he woke up to a boy walking up to him to say hi. He didn’t know who the boy was, but he said hi back. He was the most normal person he had met that day. He dressed normally and didn’t act that weird. They ended up spending all afternoon together. They learned a lot about each other and became good friends. Before the boy left, he gave him something and said that it was for him to keep, and that he could come visit him any time. He didn’t understand what he meant. The next thing he knew he was back in the woods, where he had hurt himself and woke up again and still had what the boy gave him; he was back home though. Eventually, he realized how to use the gift the boy had given. He visited him again and kept the gift safe and if he went somewhere, he would usually bring it with him. Luke wondered what the gift was that the boy got. Joe never mentioned what it was. Joe told Luke many stories, but that was Luke’s favorite and he thought about it a lot. Joe could tell that it was Luke’s favorite story too. When Luke’s birthday came, Joe gave him a very special gift. It was an old pocket watch. Joe told Luke how he got that very pocket watch when he was a boy. He told him that it was very special to him and to make sure he didn’t lose it. Luke felt bad taking it because Joe told him how much it meant to him, but Joe said not to worry because he had a similar one. Luke didn’t understand what was so special about the pocket watch. True, he hadn’t seen anything like it before, but still, he really liked it. Luke kept it safe and never showed it to anyone except of course Joe. One day Joe took his pocket watch and told Luke they were going to go on a little adventure. Joe took the pocket Flora & Fauna 17 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 watch and turned the little button on it. Luke saw that they had left the park, it was sunny instead of shaded and there were houses rather than trees. It was the day that he first met Joe. They were at his house in the morning and he was getting ready to go to school. Luke watched himself getting ready, and then he looked at Joe. Luke was amazed and he couldn’t believe it. He asked Joe, “Am I really at my house and is this the day when I first met you?” Joe smiled and responded, “Yes, Luke it is.” “How is this even possible?” asked Luke. “It’s called time traveling, and I used my pocket watch to do it,” said Joe. “Oh, and that’s what my pocket watch does too, isn’t it?!” “Yes. But, Luke, you have to be quiet. You have to make sure that you don’t let your past-self see your futureself. That is the number one rule of time traveling.” “Oh ok, I’ll be careful. Oh, are we going to go through the whole day?” “If you want to,” says Joe. So, they went through the whole day and returned to the present and future. During the day, Joe taught Luke all the rules and side effects of time traveling and told him that he couldn’t tell anyone about it. Luke promised he will follow the rules and will not tell anyone. Luke thanked Joe for everything: the pocket watch, sharing his stories with him, and for sharing time traveling with him. That night Luke thought about his day and the past and realized that the story Joe told him about the boy who hit his head was about Joe. Luke was ecstatic. He finally figured out the story. The next day Luke told Joe that he figured out the story. Joe smiled and said to Luke, “Luke, you’re a smart kid.” “Thanks Joe.” “You’re welcome Luke.” Flora & Fauna 18 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Anna Sprouse – 8 th th Isabella Inaba – 8 Flora & Fauna 19 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Mochanite th Siddharth Kumar – 8 My name is Alexander Kaminski. This story begins two decades ago, when I was 15 years old. My father was a well-known chemist who had won many awards and had access to many chemicals other scientists wouldn’t have been allowed to acquire. He even had a small lab at home. I also had a dog named Mocha, and she’s the reason why I have a story to tell. It was a school day that seemed to start out fine, but it got a lot worse as the day progressed. Once I reached school, things started going wrong. I realized I had left my homework at home, fell and almost broke my leg rushing down the staircase and basically, couldn’t do anything right. I got mad at my friends, lost my self-control and eventually could not focus on what I was doing. I came home angry, questioning why I was having such a nightmare of a day. When I tried to walk Mocha, she ran all around the house excitedly and knocked over some of my father’s chemicals into a small garbage can. The chemicals mixed and created a substance that would change my world. At first, the substance wasn’t very impressive. It just looked like a glowing neon green bar. I picked it up and it felt hard, yet pliable and warm to the touch. I tried bending it, which it did, but I couldn’t break it. I thought it was useless but I had more important things to do. On the top of my list was making sure that Mocha didn’t get into any trouble. What I really needed for Mocha was a high-quality dog training collar that was remote controlled. But my parents refused to buy it because they said it was too expensive. When I heard the expense argument, I thought to myself, “Excuse me, but how much did the private lab in our basement cost?” So I started to think about a dog collar customized to how I would like it. Suddenly, the substance grew longer and transformed into Flora & Fauna 20 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 the customized collar that I had just imagined in my mind. It was then that I knew that I was handling no ordinary substance. As I walked Mocha, I tried to figure out what I could do with this substance. I named it Mochanite, after Mocha. I went back into the lab and looked at all the chemicals that Mocha had knocked over. As I was the son of a famous chemist, my father used to give me lessons on all the elements and taught me chemistry. So I knew the chemicals that combined to form the substance. And so, I could use that formula to make Mochanite in the future in case I needed to make more. I was excited that I could use Mochanite for so many things. The possibilities were endless. I didn’t want the authorities to take Mochanite away from me and so I didn’t show it to my father. I used the substance often for many things, such as converting it into a basketball, or a pen or pencil when I needed one, or a screwdriver when I needed to fix something. I did not have to carry all these things in my backpack anymore, only a bar of Mochanite. But what I didn’t know was that I was being watched and targeted by criminals. A week after I created Mochanite, I was going home when somebody hit me from behind. I blacked out… I woke up somewhere in a huge lab, tied up. A voice blared from speakers I couldn’t see, demanding that I tell them the mixture of chemicals required for making Mochanite. There was no way I was going to give my captors the formula for Mochanite. They went quiet after warning me that they would be back and I would regret my refusal next time. I looked around and found that I was in a locked room with a desk. Surprisingly, there seemed to be no security cameras anywhere in the room. The desk was full of instruments, but I couldn’t reach them. Clearly my captors were not the brightest bunch of criminals. I wondered how I could break free of my bonds. I observed that the desk was made of some kind of metal. The edge of Flora & Fauna 21 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 its legs looked sharp. I dragged myself there and started to scrape the rope on my wrists against the edge. After a tense hour, I had cut myself loose. On the desk was a map of the lab, most of the security codes for the doors, and everything that a laboratory would have, such as chemicals and a gas mask. Most people wouldn’t have known what to do with all this stuff, but I knew exactly what I needed to do. Armed with the codes, chemicals and the gas mask, I made it to the room where the Mochanite was stored, but I was afraid that it might have a hidden security camera. I looked for the security control room on the map and found it. I punched in the code for the room and opened the door slowly. There were some suspicious looking men in that room. I put my mask on and released a special chemical that I had taken from the room where I was trapped. That chemical knocked all of the men out. I then disabled the security cameras in the entire building in case my captors woke up while I was in the lab. I went into the room where the Mochanite was kept, grabbed it and made it out of the lab. I rushed home and told my father about Mochanite. He told the authorities about it. The authorities said I could keep what I had if I gave them the formula for Mochanite. Of course, I accepted. Since then I have used Mochanite for various purposes. In fact, I am talking to you right now through a microphone made out of Mochanite! th Zoe Upham – 8 Flora & Fauna 22 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Serum Damian Castagnoli – 8 th Dr. Jensen picked up the last vial and added it into the beaker. He waited for a moment for the chemicals to combine, and picked up the beaker once more. He replaced the water for the rat in its cage with a small amount of the liquid. The rat was stuck right next to it because he had been tangled up by a piece of string going around four pillars. The rat drank from the tube and its eyes, that had just a moment before had been full of a dull confusion, suddenly seemed to observe and understand everything around it. He looked at the tangled mess keeping him in place, and began to weave through it, relieving him of his bonds. The observers in the laboratory had a look of astonishment as they witnessed the scientist’s work. He had found it, a concoction to raise intelligence. But Dr. Jensen had already found this a few days before and had been invited to demonstrate the effects of his serum to the scientific community. As everyone rejoiced and congratulated the doctor, things began to stir in the vents. The U.S. government had taken extra precautions to not let this serum fall into enemy hands. Guards were posted at the doors of the rooms in a secure facility. But their efforts were in vain. Suddenly, everything went dark. People were stumbling around the room in confusion. All electronics had lost power. Someone had set off an EMP burst. “Allen, what happened? Get these lights on,” said the commander of the security force. “I’m trying, but nothing’s working.” Suddenly, the lights came back on, along with everything else. The auxiliary power had turned on. “Doctor Jensen, are you alright?” “I’m fine Allen, thanks for asking.” Flora & Fauna 23 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 As the doctor turned around to look at his work station to see if anything had been damaged, he found his notes and the serum were gone. “Activate the alarm. NOW! My work is gone! Hurry, before it’s too late.” On the floor was a paper with the orders to obtain the newly discovered research. On the bottom was written Hail Jo. Jo, he thought, isn’t that the leader of P-city? An hour later, a meeting was held for this issue by the Secret Service to take back this research. They all agreed that someone with the utmost stealth and skill would be needed to deal with this situation. An assassin by the code name of Zero was assigned to this. Zero had been built all his life to become invisible, to only be seen when he wanted to be. His arms, legs, and eyes were replaced with robotic limbs, built for stealth. Even his brain was augmented to be able to hack into any security system, and have the utmost precision. He was the ultimate super soldier. He was flown into D.C. to be briefed for his mission and led into a large white building. “Alright, Zero, I’m sure that you already know why you’re here so I’ll skip to the details,” said one of the delegates of the committee. “What are we up against?” “We know that the information was taken somewhere in P-city. Your target is one of the scientists working at a certain research center which we have reason to believe is where the P-men are trying to reproduce Dr. Jensen’s serum. His name is Gyeong Gi. You’ll see his apartment right on the intersection of Bora, and Ki, on the third floor. Find your way into the facility. Your job is to get in there, and detain all of the scientists without being noticed. We don’t want P-city to have a reason to start a war. We’re all counting on you, Zero, to do this job flawlessly. Good luck.” Flora & Fauna 24 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Zero was flown out to the outskirts of P-city. All over the streets were military combatants, waiting to defend the inhabitants. He started moving through, using anything for cover. As he approached the intersection of Bora and Ki, he discovered the doors to the apartment building guarded by two men. There were many other people around, so he wasn’t able to take them out with his tranquilizer rifle. He approached the two men, and took cover in an ally immediately adjacent to the building, only about 50 feet from the doors. There seemed to be no civilians anywhere, so he assumed that the city had a curfew. He saw a rock under a dumpster. He picked it up and chucked it to the back of the ally. The guards were alerted. They cautiously shuffled to the aperture from where they heard the noise come. With their guns unholstered, they made their way down the path. When they got to the end, they hadn’t found anything. One of the guards shouted in Pingy, “Who’s there? If someone’s hiding back here, you’d better come out, or there’s going to be trouble.” This was followed with nothing but silence. The other said, “Come on, Hyun, I’m sure it was nothing. Let’s get back to our post.” Zero found his way into the apartment. There was no one there so he looked around. He found a laptop, password protected. Using his augmentations, he unlocked the computer and began to search for any information on how to get in to the building. On the computer, he found maps of the building, security checkpoints, and all the names of the people who knew about the project. There were five scientists all working together to try and reverse engineer the serum using the stolen notes, and the serum that they took with them. Not even the security personnel knew what the project was for. The map showed that the facility’s primary purpose wasn’t for the serum. There were five floors, each doing their own research. On the first floor was Flora & Fauna 25 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 a section secured by four guards, and a camera. The maps didn’t show anything within the section. Zero found his way through the city and eventually got to the lab. On the ground, there were way too many scientists to slip past. The building was being protected by Jo’s troops, and they were extremely well equipped. It was too dangerous to enter from the ground floor. There was another building next to the lab. The gap between the buildings was about 80 feet. Zero scaled to the top of the building. His augmentations calculated the exact force needed to jump the gap. He backed up, and started running with extreme speed, artificial gyros perfectly balancing his body. His body exploded into a streamline formation as he jumped. He landed without making a sound. There was a sniper looking off the edge of the building, not noticing the man that had just walked into the building. Once he got into the fifth floor of the building, he was undetected by any of the workers. He made it to the stair well. Down he went to the first floor. He made it to the section that he had seen on the map. He briefly looked around the corner of the hallway from which he found the information on the map to be true. Four guards, and a camera were there. Behind him, back in the hallway, was an office room with no one in it. He started looking for any valuable information that there might be. Zero heard someone coming. He hid behind the desk, and waited for what might happen. There were two people right outside the door. “What do you think’s going on down there?” said one of the employees. “I don’t know, but whatever it is, they certainly spent a ton of money to keep it secret.” “Ok, well I’ll talk to you later, Gi, I have to go back to the security room, it’s almost my shift.” “Remember, meeting at two tomorrow.” Flora & Fauna 26 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “Got it.” The door creaked open as Gi walked in. He walked to his safe, on the wall right of the door, and opened it. Zero quickly took this as an opportunity to escape, and returned to the hallway. He caught a glimpse of a figure moving the stairwell, most likely the person Gi was just talking to. Zero shadowed him all the way to the security room. It was a small room with a bunch of TVs to monitor the cameras. The security guard sat down to take his shift. The other guard left the room to return home. Zero and the guard were alone in the room. The set up was perfect. Zero took out what looked to be a taser, and shot a dart at the man. Slowly the man began to sleep. Zero hacked the security system, and shut down all of the cameras in the area. From here, he could see the section that he had to get into, still being guarded by the men. He could see that on the first floor, there weren’t many people working. He returned to the hallway, and threw a gas grenade towards the guards. Before they could react, they quickly became disoriented and fell to the floor, knocked out. Zero took the key to the door which was on the security guard, and unlocked it. When he entered, he found a long stair going down. He started his decent. Everything was so quiet. When he got to the bottom of the stairs, he found that the room held within it the five scientists that were working on the project. They mumbled amongst themselves, in an agitated state, as if stressed for time. He started to approach, with a feeling as if something was wrong. He heard a door slam shut to his right. Out of it appeared something with the shape of a man, but twice as big. The creature walked forward into the light. What appeared was hardly human. A human head rested on an enormous robotic body. The body perfectly resembled every muscle in a human body. Large fibers of mechanical muscle built the heavily augmented body, like a person Flora & Fauna 27 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 without skin. The eyes of this monster were not his original eyes either. He scanned the room for heat signatures that didn’t belong. Zero’s equipment was able to make his body undetectable by cooling his it to room temperature. Zero kept his cover as the modified human patrolled the room. The creature left the room to check the bathroom for anything suspicious. He followed and waited for the right opportunity to make his move. But his opponent had been well prepared to defend. With his inhuman hearing, the goliath was now aware of the presence of Zero. He found him hiding behind the garbage can, picked him up, and threw him into the wall, leaving a large crack where he landed. Zero rolled in between his legs and extended a sword from his arm, slicing the circuitry apart. Zero took a quick moment to contemplate his near death before getting back to work. He rustled all the scientists together, gathered Dr. Jensen’s serum and notes and high-tailed it back to the U.S. without further delay. th Adam Gin – 8 The Big Bang th Isabella Inaba – 8 Fourteen billion years ago the entire universe was clumped together into one ball. It was a very large ball, Flora & Fauna 28 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 about the size of the moon, but to the Moop, a very old race that existed long before our universe was created, it could fit in their hand. The Moop would have been extremely large if they were to be compared to humans, and humans would not have found them appealing at all with their very tight, rust colored skin, huge eyes and extremely long pointed fingers. One millennium (time goes faster in their world), a Moop named Lmp was watching over the hallway that contained all of the universe balls. These needed to be protected because if they broke open they would expand at the speed of light to their full size and destroy everything in their way. The Moop had about 10 or so of these balls and kept them all on stands in an open room. If one exploded, the rest would explode as well and create different universes. They kept the room open so that all the other races like the Plii and Werv would see their treasures. That day had been extremely busy and there were many Plii, Werv and Moops hanging about and quarreling. Lmp was currently the only one on duty and had a tendency to get distracted very easily. While Lmp was across the room, a Moop and a Plii were having a discussion. These species were known to hate each other. “Did you know that if you fold your nose inside out and try to breath out through it, it would make a trumpeting noise?” one Moop asked a Plii. The Plii had flat faces that had a huge outgrowth that looked like a nose. They had silvery skin with green speckles surrounding their eyes. The Werv were gigantic in comparison to the other species. They had a huge round body, that was covered in red scales. They also had giant eyes and no nose. “I can’t possibly imagine how you figured that out considering you Moop don’t even have noses and, if I Flora & Fauna 29 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 might add, it is rude to comment on a Plii’s nose,” the Plii snapped back. “I wonder……. Would a banct fit up your nose? Seems like it could fit it very easily,” the Moop added. A banct was a small creature that looked like an oversized blue rabbit with gigantic eyes on its back. The Plii had gotten very angry with this comment and his translucent skin had turned bright red. “How dare you!” the Plii said. He hit the Moop right where his nose would have been. The Moop fell down onto the glass-like floor and jumped back up. He shoved the Plii who was starting to wander off. This, of course, made the Plii fall flat on his face and nose. Meanwhile, Lmp was breaking up another argument that had occurred between a different Plii and a Werv. Many other disputes started up and soon the whole area was full of arguing Moop, Plii, and Werv. They never got along. One argument between a Werv and Plii started almost immediately after the first discussion broke out. “Wervs are nicer!” the Werv said. “Obviously not!” the Plii returned. These species always managed to fight about something. About four or five fights resulted in even more fights starting. Soon, it was a huge fight, all in the universe room. One Werv got pushed into a universe ball and knocked it over. When it hit the ground it made a big bang (that is where the actual name came from). The glass containing it broke into a million microscopic pieces, even though the universe stayed in one black ball. All of a sudden, the black ball exploded and everything was consumed in darkness. It all happened spontaneously. First, all of the creatures in the world evaporated into thin air, then the other universe balls exploded and started to expand, and at last everything else did too. The Moop, Flora & Fauna 30 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Werv, and Plii worlds were destroyed along with all of the other worlds. Everything was black until hundreds of tiny specks of light appeared. Each tiny speck expanded in a second and these became the stars. Then came the planets. These were pebble sized colorful rocks. Some were made of compressed gases and others of iron and rock. Some of these exploded, but the rest grew. On one of the planets called Mact, the first organism appeared. It just randomly appeared on the planet and it was a plant called Dan. It didn’t last long, but it was able to seed and create more plants. These grew and eventually transformed into other types of plants, some with leaves, some with thorns, and some even with flowers. A few hundred years later those plants evolved into a plantling. This was a plant that was different because it could move. Sadly, this plantling was hit by an asteroid and destroyed. About two years later, a fish appeared in the ocean like region of the planet. This evolved over time and became a mammal. These mammals became humans. Humans got smarter and discovered a way to go out into the universe. When they tried to go out and find the end though, they couldn’t seem to ever find it. This was because of the shape of the universe. It was a giant ball, they just kept going in circles. Then they tried to explore beyond its limits, and they ended up going around the side of the sphere. They eventually found their way back to the planet they started at. The other universe balls became other universes. The inhabitants can’t see them through the boundaries of our universe because we are trapped in a different universe. They would have to be able to break through this universe’s boundaries and through the other one to be able to see a Flora & Fauna 31 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 new universe. The other universes may not be like ours though. They could have planets made entirely up of the different elements or stars made of glowing water. The life in those universes would be different than life on a planet in our universe. You cannot measure time in the universe because you have nothing to use as a starting point. You cannot find the start because we haven’t yet found a star or planet that has been around since the beginning, and if we did manage that, how would we know how old it is and if it was one of the first. The universe may still be in a giant glass ball that is on display for giant beings, but how would we ever know that? Scientists believe that the Big Bang was when the universe first began and matter first appeared, what if the universe and matter was infinite and never had a start and will never have a finish? The universe may well be a tiny portion of a place that has billions of universes and billions of stars, but humans would never know that. You can thank a Moop named Lmp for not being able to control the fights between the other Moop, Plii and Werv resulting in our universe. The Silver Disk th Adam Gin – 8 Once upon a time in the future, there was a sad teenage boy. He had no friends, his mother died when he was young, his father was always in his lab, working on all sorts of science projects. He was a reject at school. No one liked him, they all called him a weird creep who was just trying too hard. He was barely getting through his classes to pull off a decent C. His teachers didn’t like him, they always Flora & Fauna 32 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 picked on him since his head didn’t revolve around the technology that worked in the year 2276. For example, he was already having a tough time in pre-calculus as a junior, but there were freshmen taking some other math section called, supercalculus, which was a much, much more difficult version of calculus. He didn’t belong in this era. Everyone around him were geniuses, while he was just an idiot. Every morning he looked in the mirror, he saw someone who was a teenager, tall and skinny, but he attempted to work out by doing push-ups, sit ups, occasionally pull ups just hoping that he might be included in things if he got some muscle. So he could possibly play football, baseball, basketball, or maybe even soccer, like all the cool boys did. He saw his incredibly messy brown hair which was impossible to comb out. He also saw green eyes, green as the trees of the forests he dreamed to live in. He dreamed of living off the grid, away from technology, with a bow and set of arrows, a gorgeous wife and great kids. But that wasn’t going to happen since they cut down all the trees in 2144; the way people get air now are due to the machines that combine the correct gases together, to breathe the air humans need to survive. In fact, his grandfather invented that machine. His father is keeping his legacy going, but after he passes away, the legacy will most likely plummet. “David!” cried the house robot from downstairs. This was the stand in for David’s dad and also best friend. “Time for breakfast, kid!” “Coming!” replied David. David put on a red t-shirt, blue jeans, and some sneakers. He got made fun for this too, he wore “old school” clothes, he wore your typical great-great-greatgreat-great-grandfather’s clothes. All the other people wore mostly leather. They wore leather jackets, leather pants, even leather socks! They wore padding on the knees and Flora & Fauna 33 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 elbows since people mainly rode motorcycles, and it was apparently cool if you scrape them on turns. David made some final attempts at combing his hair, still no effect. He pushed a button on the wall so that he could transport himself to the kitchen. A purple circle appeared in front of his mirror, and he stepped through. He walked into his kitchen to see his robot, Steve. You could mistake him for a human, if it weren’t for his dog tag which said he was a robot and his serial number, but other than that he was like any other human. He was blonde with blue eyes, fair skin, and was extremely tall, around 6’7”. He was also quite strong, but then again he was a robot, so I’m not sure if you could count that as strong. Steve wore the “old school” clothing for David, so he wouldn’t feel too lonely. “Want some pizza?” asked Steve, ready to grab a slice of pepperoni from the fridge. “No thanks, I’ll just have some cereal,” replied David as he walked to a cupboard to press a button to grab his Frosted Flakes. This was another reason why he was considered off, he stuck to old traditions from two centuries ago. For some reason the meals changed throughout the years. For example, breakfast was dinner, dinner was lunch, and lunch was breakfast. It was really confusing. “You know, you should try to fit in to the present day traditions, since you’re shunned at school, maybe if you did that you could be the cool, kid,” said Steve. “I don’t think I can do that, I think the old traditions are better,” replied David, munching on his cereal. “Time for school, kid,” said Steve looking at the clock on the wall, they’re just a set of dots now. Over the years, people thought it was a good idea to use dots to tell time, David never really got it. The way he figures out time was by using the sun, really old school. “Okay,” David sighed. Flora & Fauna 34 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 They got into a really nice sports car, (since you couldn’t use the teleport to go from one building to the next, you could only teleport inside the building to another room in it) there were no words to describe it or compare it to the world of the twenty-first century. They pulled out of the driveway, Steve pressed a couple of buttons which made the hovering device of the car take off into flight to the airway traffic. The cars flew up in the air traffic, the motorcycles stayed on the ground, and surprisingly enough there were more motorcycles than cars. They made it to school on time, and Steve dropped off David in the back of the school, so he didn’t have to deal with everyone else. He walked through the school, the hallways were all LED lights, there were no lockers since the only thing you needed was a flash drive. David finally made his way to class, dragging his feet slowly to his desk in the back. Once there, the whispers and stares began, making him question his breakfast choice as his stomach started to turn. “God, look at that loser, David,” whispered all the girls in the back. “That little freak.” David sat down in the very back corner of the classroom, in the shadows. He sat there and put his flash drive in the desk which instead of the desk being something to write on, was only comprised of a monitor, no pencils or papers required. David patiently waited for instructions. “Good morning class, today we are...” Here we go again, the teacher did the all sweet and charming talk in the morning, David could barely listen and instead just started to daydream. He thought about how miserable his life was, and just how he was born in this era. Why couldn’t he had been born when there were still trees, and less technology? What was God thinking when he put him in this generation? Was he thinking that he would somehow fit in? Clearly that wasn’t going to happen. Flora & Fauna 35 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 He went through the entire day like this, the teachers picked on him a lot more and always smirked when they did. The bullying was just getting worse and worse, he couldn’t take it anymore. This was all that he was going to take in. He was going to go home and not going to leave it again. When he got home, he teleported himself up into his room. He went straight onto his bed, and cried. “May I come in?” said a voice he rarely heard. A man came walking in, wearing a white leather scientist coat. He had crazy brown hair like him, his eyes were just the same as well, forest green. “I know you’ve been having it really tough, son,” said his father, “I’ve got a solution to your dreams coming true.” “How, there aren’t any more trees?” replied David with bloodshot red eyes. “Now there aren’t, but I can take you to back to the day when there were,” replied his father with a smile. “How?” David said bewildered. “Come on, let me show you, kid,” said his father and went back in the purple circle. David followed in the purple circle and entered a room he had never seen before. It was his father’s lab.A bunch of tools were scattered throughout the room, blueprints were strewn all over the place. But one thing was in the center of the room, all by itself. It was a disk with a circumference of a twenty-first century hula hoop. There was nothing special about it, it was just a silver disk. “What’s this?” asked David. “This is your one way trip to the time you dream of,” smiled his father. David’s heart jumped, “What do I have to do?” “Stand on the disk and say when and where you want to go,” said his father proudly. “But what about you and Steve, wouldn’t you be upset that I’m gone?” David asked puzzled. Flora & Fauna 36 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “Of course, we’ll be upset, kid,” said Steve coming out of the portal, “But we would rather you be happy in your time, than be here and suffer.” “We will be able to read about you in history links, we’ll know everything that you have done and accomplished,” said David’s father. “I’m going to miss you guys,” David ran up to them both and hugged them, “Thank you so much, you’re the best.” “We love you, kid,” said his father. “I love you too, is this going to be good bye?” said David with tears in his eyes. “No, we’ll come back to see you when we want to,” said his father, lightly crying. “We’re coming with you to the place first,” Steve smiled. “Okay.” They all crowded around on the disk. It was kind of tough, but they managed to all squeeze in. “When do you want to go, son?” “Let’s go to October 9, 910 at 9:02 in the morning.” Then the disk started to spin, it rose from the ground as well. It spun and spun, eventually it produced a green flash, and then it all stopped. David looked outside, and he saw trees, he took in his first breath of fresh air. He heard birds chirping, he heard the river running. “Thank you so much guys, this is the best thing you could’ve done for me,” said David as he hugged them. “You’re welcome, kid,” said his father. “We’ll be back with supplies so that you can build your house.” “Okay, Dad.” They were back as soon as they left. And they started building; they built a beautiful lodge, he built a strong bow and fabulously accurate arrows. David learned how to hunt and live off the land. This was the happiest David had ever been. He got the one thing he ever wanted, he got to go Flora & Fauna 37 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 back and live a simple life, free of technology. He belonged here, he knew it. Eventually he didn’t need his dad or Steve around as much. Every time his dad and Steve left, the three of them decided when should be the next time they should meet. They checked in on him every so often. Eventually, David met Valerie, the girl of his dreams. They got married, and had beautiful children. This is all David had ever wanted, and he wouldn’t have ever wanted it any differently. Damian Castagnoli – 8 Vapor Burglar th th Arathi Ranga – 8 I race through the narrow street, hurrying to Professor Gneil's house. As I speed down the corner, my mind is racing. Professor Gneil might be mad or I might be in loads of trouble. I rush up the steps to his house and pound the door. No one answers. "Professor!" Flora & Fauna 38 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 I hear footsteps and the door unlocking. Professor Gneil opens his door and I push through him to get inside. "We might have a problem," I say to him as he shakes his head with disapproval. ** Two Weeks Earlier ** "Daniel! Get out of your room and do something productive," my mother yelled at me. First of all, I was in my room studying for my upcoming English test, which in my opinion, was productive. Nevertheless, I walked downstairs to the living room. "What do you want me to do?" I asked. "What is with your attitude, young man?!" my mother questioned me. I sighed. "I'm sorry. Do you need help with anything?" I asked her. "Yes, go to the guest room. You'll find a bucket of paint and a paintbrush. Paint the walls," she demanded. I blankly stared at her. "Did you not here me? I said: GO PAI-" "Yes, yes, ok. Bye," I stated and left the room. The guest room was full of things we never use. It was probably the dirtiest room in the whole house, which made it incredibly hard to paint. But I love a challenge. I found the bucket of paint in the back and I picked it up to see what color it was. I gently and carefully tipped it over, for the color patch is on the back of the bucket. Unfortunately when I tilted the bucket, the paint poured out. The lid was popped open! The paint dribbled out of its container as I stared in a panicked state. I rushed over to the cleaning cabinet to find a cleaner that would take the paint stain out of the carpet. A few seconds passed and I gave up. I grabbed two different colored liquids and rushed to the room, before anyone noticed. I sprayed some of the blue Flora & Fauna 39 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 colored liquid on the stain. Nothing. Then I sprayed the red colored liquid. Still nothing. In the desperate state I was in, I screwed the cap off both the bottles of liquid and poured some of each on the stain. The stain was slowly fading. I poured more of the liquid and the stain became even more faded. However, I soon noticed a vapor forming above the stain. I knew that no matter what, I should not breathe in the vapor. I ran out of the room as quickly as possible and closed the door. "What's all this ruckus?" my father asked me, as he saw me sprinting out of the room. "Hm? Oh, um. You know, just stuff," I said with an innocent smile. He stared at me with suspicion for a moment and then walked away. I decided that I had had a pretty eventful day and went to bed, leaving the room still unpainted. The next morning, I woke up with an awful stench in my nose. I got up in a flurry and hurried out of bed. I got ready for school, said my good-byes and headed to school. "Danny! Hey, wait up," my best friend Richard called. "Hey Rich," I said back. "Yo, bro what's up? You look sick, man," he said. "Oh yeah. Dude, my mom made me paint the guest room and... well, I was pretty clumsy," I explained. "Bro, I honestly don't even want to know," Rich said. "Ok, well, I'll catch up with you later. I have chemistry," I said drearily. "Oh dude, you have Gneil! Ha! Good luck, he's a hard one," Rich said and I walked away. I stepped into my chemistry class and there she was. Violet Harmon, the apple of my eye. Feeling courageous, I sat down next to her, making me her lab partner. "Hey Vi," I said casually. She stared at me. "Only my friends call me Vi," she replied coldly. Sheesh. Flora & Fauna 40 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 "So I'm guessing we aren't friends . . . " I slowly said. "I'm sorry, I don't know your name. Or anything else about you," she said. This was true. "Well, my name is Daniel Graysem and I hope we can be friends," I said with a soft smile. She laughed. "Ok Daniel Graysem. I'm Violet Harmon. Let's be friends," she agreed. "Alright class, settle down. Time to learn," our professor stated. The room was silent. He talked about mixing elements and solutions and chemicals and other science stuff. However, something he said caught my attention. "Sometimes, when we mix two chemicals that aren't supposed to be mixed together, a vapor forms. This vapor forms because a chemical change is taking place as these two chemical merge to form a brand new chemical," he explained. This also explained my current scenario. When class ended, I had two options. Follow Violet and hang out with her or talk to Professor Gneil about my paint stain situation. I told myself the right thing to do was to talk to Professor Gneil. "Hi," I said. "Do you need help with anything?" he asked. "Well, I think I formed a vapor, like the one you were talking about in class," I told him. "Do you know how hard it is to make a vapor? Even scientists struggle with that. A little kid like you couldn't do that," he said. "But I did," I replied. "Then bring in a container with the vapor to me. We can run some tests on it," he said. I thanked him and left. As I left the room, I saw Violet waiting outside the door for me. "Hey, Greysem," she said. We walked and talked for some time. "I have a confession to make," she finally said. Flora & Fauna 41 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 "Uh-oh. What?" I asked. "I overheard you talking with Professor Gneil," she said. I honestly didn't care. "Well, I love chemistry, so I was wondering if I could help you run the tests or something?" she said. "Of course you can," I said back. When I went home, I made a beeline towards the guest room. There was still a small cloud of vapor over the place where the stain was. I took a glass flask and filled it up with some vapor. I gathered the vapor and put the flask in my backpack. The next day at school, both Rich and Violet approached me. "I told Rich about your vapor," Violet said. I dreaded that. I was hoping the vapor testing would be a chance for me to be with Violet, but with Rich it would be all different. The three of us headed towards Professor Gneil's office. "What are the three of you doing here?" he asked. "Remember? The vapor?" I tried to remind him. "Yes. But why are they here?" he asked. "I invited them," I replied. "No, this is a private matter," he declared. I looked back at my friends. I motioned for them to go away and I felt bad for it too. "Alright, Daniel, here's the thing. You cannot trust ANYONE. That Violet girl? Her father works for a chemical company. Of course she is going to be all over you and your new vapor! And Rich? He can't keep his mouth shut. He'll tell everyone about your new vapor and you will be bombarded with questions," he explained. I nodded in agreement. "Now, let's see the vapor," he said. He examined it. He tested it. He tried to duplicate it. His eyes became wide. "How did you make this?" he asked curiously. "I have no idea," I replied. "What you have made, it is incredible," he said. Yay. Flora & Fauna 42 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 "Um. What is it though?" I asked. "If you cool this into a liquid, it is extremely valuable. A drop of it will make you immortal!" he exclaimed. OH. MY. GOD. "No way!" I exclaimed as well. "Yes way! It will. But, my boy, you must keep this very safe. People all over the world are looking for this substance. You see, it can't be duplicated. It can only be made at very rare occasions, " he said. "I will guard it with my life," I promised and told him where I would keep it. ** Two Weeks Later ** "We might have a problem," I said to him as he shook his head with disapproval. "What did you do?" Professor Gneil asked. "I lost it," I told him. "YOU IDIOT! YOU SCOUNDREL!" he yelled. As he yelled, I saw a shimmer of light in the background. There was a beam of light reflecting off a glass surface. A glass surface that looked exactly like my flask which held the vapor. In fact, it was the same container. He had the vapor. Professor Gneil played me. He took the vapor for himself. A million thoughts raced through my head. I didn't know whether to quickly grab it and go or just confront him about it. Maybe, I should just leave and pretend I never saw anything. "I can't stress how big of a deal this is! You're useless to me now, " he said. "Wait, no. Don't worry Professor! I think I still have a small cloud of vapor at my house, " I told him. I was well aware that there was no more vapor, however I wanted to see how Professor Gneil would react. He stared at me, speechless. "Should I bottle that up?" I asked. Flora & Fauna 43 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 "Yes," he said quietly, "Yes, yes. Bottle all of it up. Don't leave a single drop behind." At this point, I knew his motive. He wanted the vapor all for himself. But I quickly devised a plan in the back of my head. "Ok, but I think it would be a better idea to just give the flask to you this time. Obviously, I'm not responsible enough to keep the vapor safe," I said. The moment the words left my lips I swear, I saw his eyes sparkle with delight and greed. **At Home** I collapsed on my bed and thought about my genius plan. However, to execute it, I needed the help of either Violet or Rich. As much as I loved Rich, I knew that he was a blabbermouth. Violet wasn't a blabbermouth, but she would tell her dad. But I really wouldn't care if her dad's company knew about the vapor. I mean, I could even sell it to his company and make some money later on. I was ok if her dad knew about the vapor. But if people in school knew about the vapor, I would be known as the weird science vapor geek nerd person. So the choice was self-evident. I would pick Violet. For the next part of my plan, I had to create a faux vapor. With the advice of my sister, an artist, I made a vapor that looked exactly like the original. The next day at school I approached Violet. "Hey Vi, I need some help," I asked her. "Really? After you shooed me away when you and Professor Gneil were testing the vapor? Sorry, but I think I'll pass,” she replied and walked away. I grabbed her hand. "No, don't go. I'm sorry, but I'll make it up to you. Please just listen to me," I told her. Then, I explained the whole situation to her. "Ha! I'm not that gullible. A vapor that keeps you immortal? Yeah, right," she said. Flora & Fauna 44 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 "Violet, please. I need your help," I told her, Everything suddenly become serious. "Ok fine. What do you need me to do?" she asked. "So I'm going to Professor's house this evening to give him the fake vapor. He will go to his office to test it and I will accompany him. Then, I will say that I have to use the restroom and I will open the window in the back of the house so you can sneak in and get the original vapor and then sneak back out. Meanwhile, all the tests Professor does will fail and I'll just say that it's probably a different vapor and I'm sorry to have wasted his time. Then I'll leave and meet you in the back again. Got it?" I explained. "Ok sure, this seems pretty fun," she said with a smile. Great. ** A Few Hours Later ** I saw Violet hiding in a bush in front of Professor Gneil's house. She was wearing black jeans and a black hoodie but she still looked better than any model. I showed her where the back window was and told her to be quiet. Then I knocked on the door. He opened the door, but didn't let me in. "Here's the new vapor," I showed him. He firmly took it. "Thank you, I'll see you in class tomorrow," he answered. Uh-oh. "Don't you want to test it?" I asked, "No, it's fine. Don't worry about it," he replied. No. No. No. This would ruin everything. Suddenly, there was a large bang in the background. I saw a blur of black inside and immediately recognized it as Violet. Did she get inside without my help? Professor Gneil quickly whipped his head around when he heard the bang. "Did you hear that? Well, I'm going to go check, see you tomorrow Daniel," the professor said as he closed the Flora & Fauna 45 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 door. I stood dumbfounded for a moment. Then I raced to the back of the house where I had left Violet. "Guess what I got!!" she exclaimed. She dangled the glass flask in front of my face. I can't explain the joy I felt when I saw that flask. "Oh my god, how did you do it?" I asked excitedly. "I don't know why you made such a big deal about it. The window was actually open and the flask was in plain sight. So I took it," she explained. I was so happy I threw my arms around her and gave her a big hug. Unfortunately, the sound of shattering glass quickly followed. "Daniel!" she cried out, "It broke!" The flask lay broken on the road. Splintering pieces of glass covered the area as the vapor was caught in the winds and traveled far beyond our reach. Fumes of bleach and ammonia started to form. I plugged my nose and Violet did the same. We ran out of the neighborhood, terrified of being caught. When we finally evaded the neighborhood, we sat down on a bench to catch our breath. "So . . . um, I guess that's it," I said, to break the silence. "Hey, don't be sad. In my opinion, that was amazing. Who cares about some stupid gas? We had fun!" she said with a smirk, "It was by far the best day I have ever experienced." I immediately started smiling like an idiot. That's when I realized that in this crazy adventure, I had discovered something far more valuable than immortality. I discovered friendship. Back in Time th Taylor Humphreys – 8 I stare at the blue pamphlet wondering why I needed it. In a few seconds, it would be gone. We were going back in Flora & Fauna 46 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 time to study our ancestors, the humans. We look the same, talk the same, and live the same, but our brains have genetically mutated over the past century. We can do what few used to call impossible. No, we don’t have super powers that allow us to fly or create big gusts of wind, we just have a vast amount of knowledge pertaining to science. Ask me anything and I will explain it in the most logical way imaginable, so can the rest of my group. Our society is based on colonies that orbit the sun like the planets do, except we are much smaller. I live in the E Colony. We study many things, but mostly Earth, like the plants and animals. The colony doesn’t live like the others. We don’t have jobs, or cars, or running water; that’s saved for the bigger ones. If we want water, we attach our ship to a bigger ship and store the water in tanks at the back of the colony. That’s why the others hate us, because we’re seen as needy. They’re right; we just don’t want to admit it. Anyway, I stare down at the folded paper in front of me. I figure reading it would be a waste, so I toss it. “Cassidy, Cassidy Miller!” someone says. “Present,” I say. I hear the swish of the pen as someone writes a check mark next to my name. The roll call continues, but I’m too nervous to concentrate. Everyone is nervous on their first trip, right? I feel a small nudge on my shoulder and turn to see my best friend Lindsay. “You ok?” she asked. “Fine. Just nervous.” “My mom says everyone is on their first trip. There’s nothing to worry about.” I give her a weak smile, and everything goes silent. I hear Mrs. Hughes say something, but I blank out. What good is knowing the facts when there are thirty-nine others around who will just tell me afterwards? I’m trying so hard not to run and hide, but I manage to stay calm. I see that the other candidates are getting into their pods, so I go in as Flora & Fauna 47 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 well. ‘What’s the worst that can happen?’ I keep asking myself. I feel a slight tug as an instructor straps me into my seat. It’s too late now, so I close my eyes, and try to brace myself for the severe headache that always happens after time travel, or so I’ve heard. I hear the machine start, and before I can stay anything, we’re off. ----------------------------------I wake up to silence. I take off my seat belt, and look through the small window on the front of my pod. I notice that some of the others are waking up as well. Scared to get out, I wait for someone else to open their pod and go out. The first out was a boy named Cameron. He was tall with short, dark-brown hair that almost seems to be black. Nothing happens to him, so I also get out of my capsule. “Where are we?” I say, walking towards him. “I don’t know,” he responds. As I walk closer to him, I can notice that he has gotten much cuter in the last few years. I remember Lindsay talking about him a few times, but I never paid any attention to what she said about boys, plus, I had liked Cameron a long time ago, until he kissed Kenna Raylend. After that, I never paid him much attention. But I can’t help but stare at him. When he turns back around to face me, I quickly avert my eyes, but I know that he saw me staring. I feel the heat rise up to my cheeks, and know that I must be blushing. When I look back up at him, he is still looking at me. “Do I have something on my face?” I ask. “No. Sorry I didn’t mean to stare, but you’re the prettiest thing around this place,” he says, pointing behind him. I’m about to say some snarky comment about how he was such a player, but I notice that we were surrounded by a dense forest. I look around and notice that some of the Flora & Fauna 48 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 others are waking up. I give a look back at Cameron again who was no longer looking at me, but helping one of his friends out of his pod. His friend was tall, but not as tall as Cameron, he has mousey brown hair, and long thin face with high cheek bones and he is definitely attractive. ‘He’s nothing compared to Cameron’ I think to myself. My thoughts, however, were interrupted by a soft groan. I turn around, and see that Lindsay is awake. “Hey,” I say to her. “I think I might be sick,” she says. I help her up, and take her away from where the rest of the group is just waking up so she won’t be seen if she gets sick. We have passed a few trees before she coughs up her last meal. I am sure that we are out of sight, so I help try and clean her up. “Are you ok?” I ask. “Motion sickness I guess.” “Hey so you know who I saw before you woke up?” She shakes her head. “Cameron.” She gives me a puzzled look. “You talk about him on a daily basis but I never seem to notice because I used to think he was kinda annoying… ring a bell?” I say all in one breath. “OOOHHHH! Where is he?” “He’s back there,” I say pointing behind me. I look at Lindsay who was now trying to stand up. “Well what are you waiting for?” she asks, “let’s go.” She walks back to the area where the rest of the group is, and I notice that everyone has woken up. Girls are swarming around Cameron, pretending to need help standing up. ‘Give me a break’ I think to myself. We keep walking, but I hear someone calling my name. I turn around to see Cameron frantically waving his arms and walking towards me. I pretend not to notice and begin to walk at a faster pace, but he catches up to me. Flora & Fauna 49 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “Yes?” I say. “Are you feeling ok?” “Fine, but Sarah looks like she needs help,” I say, pointing at a girl who is giving me a death stare, I guess for talking to Cameron. I pat him twice on the shoulder and say, “Okay, well I have to go help Lindsay, you have fun with that one,” I say nodding my head at Sarah. I turn around, but he lightly takes my hand and turns me back around. We are close enough that I can slightly feel the heat radiating off of his body. I feel as if my entire body was going to melt. I want to run and help Lindsay, but I don’t move. “Cam!” someone says. He turns around, letting go of my hand in the process. I then realize that I was holding his hand that entire time. I finally turned around and noticed that Lindsay was staring at me. “What?” I ask. “Don’t pretend that you aren’t starting to like him.” “I’m not pretending,” I shoot back. “Besides, he has an abundance of girls just begging to be his girlfriend, I highly doubt that he’d choose the only one who isn’t.” She smirks, and shrugs her shoulders. “If you really don’t like him, then stop blushing every time he looks at you.” I look up at her with a shocked face. She giggles, and tucks her long red hair behind her ear before looking back down at the ground. I hear someone clear their throat. I turned around and noticed that Mr. Stratford has made his way to the middle of the group, and is about to announce something to us. “Students, we have gone back in time. We are currently in England during the mid-1700s.” “Well, what do you want us to do about it?” someone asks. Flora & Fauna 50 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “Well, you guys will stay here while I go into town to try and buy some clothes so that you won’t look weird. I’ll divide the rest of the money amongst you all so you may have an opportunity to buy something when we go into town, after we go make a treacle tart from the master baker, William Roman! He’s actually just one of our guys from the colony who we have sent back in time when the group comes so he can teach them how to bake something.” Mr. Stratford marches off, and the group goes back to talking and looking around. I begin to talk to Lindsay, who seems content to talk about the clothes that we will be wearing. I am catching onto a few words she says like itchy or long, but I am hardly paying attention. I am thinking about Cameron and how I had held his hand. “Are you even listening?” I hear her ask. “What?” “I said, I wonder if Mr. Stratford will bring a mirror back so I can fix my hair.” “Oh.” “You know if you keep looking at him, your eyes might just pop out.” “Hmm? What do you mean?” She nods in Cameron’s direction. How did she see me look at him? She had her head down the entire time. “Just talk to him!” I give a look saying ‘Yea right’. “Why not?” “Look at him. He has a group of girls around him, and a few friends. I’m not going into all that,” I say. “Well if you don’t talk to him soon, I’m afraid that he’s gonna come over here. Then you’ll have to deal with the girls’ death stares for the rest of the trip.” I give a weak, embarrassed laugh, but it was cut short by Lindsay’s gasp. I look at her, bewildered, and notice that she isn’t looking at me. I turn around and see Cameron, along with the swarm of girls heading for Lindsay and me. Flora & Fauna 51 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 He is talking to one of them saying something that I can’t quite make out, but before I can look back at Lindsay and ask what is going on, I see that Mr. Stratford is coming back. He has a handful of clothes plus a few baskets full of clothes as well. “Here. Girls first, then guys! Girls change over there,” he says, pointing behind Lindsay and me, “and boys over here!” I assume he means at the opposite end of the clearing from where the girls are supposed to be changing. I grab a dress and a pair of shoes and make my way to the girls’ make-shift changing room. As I walk closer I can hear Cameron’s name being thrown around followed by a few giggles. When I am behind the trees, out of sight of the boys, the group goes silent. “So what’s the secret Miller?” a girl named Brenda asks. I think she understands by my expression that I am genuinely confused because she quickly adds, “you know… with Cameron. He only seems to want to talk to you, and no one knows why because, let’s be honest, you’re not half a decent as Kenna,” she remarks, pointing at the it girl of the group, who is also Cameron’s ex-girlfriend. Did I mention she also used to be my best friend? That was until she “accidentally” doused me with water one day and made a fool out of me in front of everyone. Lindsay was one of the only ones who came to help me, and after that she became my sister. Honestly, I don’t mind, considering that Brenda was basically the oddest looking person I’ve ever seen. She is short and pleasantly plump with yellow teeth and a pointy nose. What bugs me is that she compared me to someone like Kenna. Kenna is beautiful, no one can deny that, but she’s so uptight and she acts like she runs the world. I can feel my cheeks begin to burn, and quickly turn away so that I won’t say something I’d regret in the long-run. Flora & Fauna 52 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 I get dressed with Lindsay and a few other girls who don’t mind that Cameron has supposedly taken a liking to me. When I turn around, I see a short girl named Skylar smiling at me, or behind me, I can’t tell. “What?” I ask. She points behind me, and I see the boys wearing what looked like over-sized pants, and loosely-fitted shirts with boots that seemed to have a slight heel on them. I can’t help my smile, but when I notice that some of the boys have seen the girls watching, and I quickly turn around. I hear a shrill cry of laughter and I look to my right and see Lindsay laughing so hard she could barely breathe. If there was a chance that some of the boys didn’t notice that all of the girls are watching them, it’s gone. “Oh come on,” I say, “it’s not like we look better.” Actually, I don’t notice, but the clothes that Mr. Stratford has picked out for us are kind of cute. I look down at my dress which has a dark green, billowing skirt and a laced up bodice in the front. The sleeves hang from my arms and tighten and cut off at my elbows. I actually think it is quite lovely. I take my hair out of the bun it was in, and feel as it floats down my shoulders, and touches the middle of my back. It feels good to let my hair be loose, but I know that it has to go right back into a bun again before we go into town. I have seen so in old portraits of women that are kept in our history room. While I wait, I braid a piece of my hair, and tie it along with the rest, into a bun again, and walk into the clearing with the rest of the group. I see that some of the boys have tried to cover the pods with leaves to try and make it blend in with the forest, but let’s be honest here, they did such a poor job, that even a zephyr would displace every leaf and every blade of grass that they have so carefully placed on the pods. Before we make our way into town, we have to be checked by Mr. Stratford to get his approval on whether we Flora & Fauna 53 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 can blend into the crowd. Once we are all checked, we make our way into a small market place so crowded with people that I can feel myself beginning to perspire. We walk passed many small shops until we get to a small bakery that smells of yeast and sugar. “William!” Mr. Stratford says with a wide grin. “Dani! How are you?” he replies, opening his arms to embrace Mr. Stratford. After they re-acquaint themselves, Mr. Roman shows us how to make a treacle tart. I learn that I’m not the best at baking, and end up producing what looks like a piece of clay beneath brown sugar that smells like flour and honey. “Well some of you have had better luck than others I see,” he says looking down at the tarts, “but at least you tried.” After we all leave the bakery, we make our way back into the market, and look at the small shops. I buy a beautiful, light blue butterfly necklace with the money that Mr. Stratford gave me from one of the shops selling jewelry. The butterfly hangs on a small piece of twine that feels very smooth when I touch it. Cameron has walked up behind me and scares me so much, that I think I’ve had mini heart attack. “I see you are having some trouble with the string of your necklace,” he says, holding out a hand, “I can fix it if you want.” I reluctantly give it up, but when he untangles it, he helps me put it on. I felt his fingers gently breeze the back of my neck as he fastens it, and I draw in a small gasp. I turn around and see he’s smiling. “What?” I ask. “Come walk with me,” he says. We make our way through the crowd, and at one point, a woman accidentally tripped me, but Cameron manages to catch me. Despite his efforts, I twist my ankle but manage Flora & Fauna 54 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 to wobble along until we stop at the end of the road, where the street abruptly meets the woods. “Here,” he says. “Why are we –” I start, but I’m cut off. I notice that Cameron has lowered his head so that our eyes were perfectly aligned. He comes closer, but I stop him by putting a hand on his shoulder. “I can’t” “Why not?” “Because you were with Kenna. Before you were dating, Kenna told me she really liked you. When we joined Colony J to get our monthly supplies, she said you kissed her.” “What? Cass, that’s not what happened… Kenna kissed me.” “What?!? She said you kissed her and told her you always liked her.” “Cass, why would I say that when I’ve always liked you?” I’m shocked. Did he really just say that? I don’t know what to think. “But why did you date her after that?” “I asked her if you were into me, and she said no, but that she always liked me. I would have never dated her if I knew you had a thing for me.” “What makes you think I have a thing for you?” I protest as I cross my arms over my chest. “Cass, you know that I see you stare at me sometimes.” It’s true. Why did I think he wouldn’t notice? “Yeah? Well how do you know you didn’t just have something on your face?” I say, not wanting to back down. He smiles at me, showing his dimples, making him even more attractive. “Because I never have anything on my face.” I laugh at that. When we walk back, Cameron reaches for my hand, and we rejoin the group. Half the girls can Flora & Fauna 55 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 burn holes through my skull with the looks they are giving me, but the other girls I was changing with can’t help but smirk. I hear Mr. Stratford call our group together again, and we make our way back the clearing that we landed in. I was right, all of the leaves covering the capsules were blown away, but none of the boys seem too bummed about it. I get into my capsule, and Mr. Stratford says, “We’re going back home you guys.” “Finally,” I hear him say under his breath. I can’t help but smile. When we get back to our colony, we are still dressed in the clothes Mr. Stratford has given us. I feel nauseous and I have a bad headache, but when I see Cameron coming towards me to help me up, it all fades away. Some of the girls are still trying to give me dirty looks, but they are all too sick to convey how they really feel. Among them, I see Kenna, her eyes blazing, but honestly, I can’t be bothered. I feel one of Cameron’s arms wrap around my shoulders, and I reach up to hold his hand. ‘Today was a good day’ I think to myself. th Arathi Ranga – 8 Flora & Fauna 56 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Dr. Dolittle Goes Abroad In 4 grade, students are introduced to the classic, The Story of Dr. Dolittle, a delightful tale about a veterinarian who can speak to animals, first published in 1920. The series continues with 12 books in all, taking Dr. Dolittle and his animal companions to the Post Office, the Circus, the Zoo, and even the Moon! Also published was an associated tome, GubGub’s Book: An Encyclopedia of Food, part cookbook, part collection of vignettes—which for any fan of the eponymous, epicurean pig would love. In the tales beyond, students have written their version of the friendly doctor and his quests to further veterinary health across the globe, stopping in the Arctic tundra, the coral reef of Australia, the African savannah, and the wilds of Canada. Also featured are his friends, WANTED for their various exploits in the quiet village of Puddle-by-on-the-Marsh and beyond. Much like the beloved doctor himself, the students got whimsical with their depictions of animals using mixed media. For the backgrounds they used tempera paint to create layers, while for the animals themselves, they used acrylic to bring each creature to life. Flora & Fauna 57 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 X-out Bilal Yaseen - 4 th WANTED This parrot, Polynesia of name, is the smartest of smartypants. She has copied 20 adult novels, 2 children’s novels, and 13 young adult novels. She was last seen in the Canary Islands. She has also been seen in Cairo, London, New York and Paris. Wanted for Plagiarism. If seen, call X-out Plagiarism at +075 0037 2900 or email XPlay@yahoo.uk. Flora & Fauna 58 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Search for the African Violet Nick Corral - 4 th Once upon a time, a long time ago there was an animal doctor, by the name of Doctor Dolittle. Doctor Dolittle was known worldwide by animals for his ability to speak the language of the animals. He had many pets, but his favorite animals were Dab-Dab the duck, Jip the dog, GubGub the pig, Too-Too the owl, and a Pushmipullu which is a gazelle unicorn cross, but it doesn't have a tail instead it has another head. One fine summer day, as Doctor Dolittle was relaxing with his pets, Gub-Gub began vomiting. After Gub-Gub stopped vomiting, Doctor Dolittle gave Gub-Gub a checkup. The check-up revealed Gub-Gub had tyloopnoose. Doctor Dolittle's medical book said that the only cure was a certain type of violet only found in Africa. He left the house and returned an hour later. He told the animals he had rented them a boat and they would leave in the morning. They woke up bright and early that next morning and packed and packed. When they arrived at the docks, the captain and the crew were waiting for them. They set sail for several weeks until they reached Africa. When they reached Africa, they set out in search for the African violet. They thought they found one, when out of nowhere, a cheetah jumped at them. It frightened them so they ran. The cheetah pursued asking if he was the famous Dr. Dolittle. Dr Dolittle replied saying he was Dr Dolittle. The cheetah asked him if he could help his cub. Dr Dolittle said he would and set off to the cheetah's den to examine him. When he got to the den, he found the cub in a horrible state. He returned five minutes later saying that he had the same disease as Gub-Gub, and that they were still looking Flora & Fauna 59 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 for a cure. The cheetah asked what the cure was. Dr. Dolittle told the cheetah that the cure was a rare African violet and that he had come to Africa to find one. Dr. Dolittle went to a clearing in the jungle where he found one African violet growing there. He picked it up and ground it to a fine paste. He gave a little to Gub-Gub and a little to the cheetah cub. Out of nowhere, the cheetah asked, “Can I come with you? I'm tired of people coming after my hide.” Dr. Dolittle said, “Why not?" So they left the African shores an hour later and journeyed back to Dr Dolittle's home in England, where they lived happily ever after. Jeremiah Koriganowitz - 4 Flora & Fauna th 60 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Kelsey Olesen - 4 th The African Savannah Noah Hailu - 4 th After Doctor Dolittle returned from his voyage to the African jungle, he was very busy taking care of his animals in Puddleby. All the animals in Puddleby got along with each other including the new animal, pushmi-pullyu. Doctor Dolittle was not surprised to get another message from the African Savannah. This time, the message came from the lions. They wrote that they were having trouble roaring due to sore throats. They were asking Doctor Dolittle’s help to find a cure for their sore throats. Doctor Dolittle had just returned from his journey from Africa two years ago. But he could not say no to an animal’s plea for help. Doctor Dolittle called for a meeting with all his animals in Puddleby. The meeting was to make a decision on who Flora & Fauna 61 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 will stay back in Puddleby and who will go to Africa. He had a hard time choosing which animals to bring on the journey. At the end he decided to bring Too-Too the owl and Polyesnia the parrot. He picked Too-Too for his sharp hearing and Polyesnia because she knows what to bring for the journey. He gave the other animals in Puddleby assignments to care for the farm while he was away. This time around Doctor Dolittle was able to set off on his journey right away because he had made enough money. He packed enough food and supplies with the help of Polyesnia. He said good bye to the animals and started his long journey. He sailed his ship across the Atlantic Ocean. The journey through the ocean was smooth and uneventful. Doctor Dolittle went through the Mediterranean Sea and finally docked his ship on the coast of North Africa. When he reached North Africa he bought a camel named Egypt. Egypt was able to help the Doctor and his crew to reach their destination of the African Savannah grass lands. They let the camel free once they were finished with his help. In the African Savannah, the lions greeted Doctor Dolittle and his crew. The Doctor had never been to this part of Africa before. The grass was as tall as Doctor Dolittle. He was soon able to figure out what was causing the lion’s sore throat. Luckily for the lions, he had the right medication with him. After the lions were cured, they asked him to help another animal who lived by the lake. Doctor Dolittle met the new animal hiding by the lake. The animal was large, gray in color and was very scary looking. Polyesnia and Too-Too went and talked to the strange looking animal. The animal was shy and did not want to talk to them at first. Polyesnia and Too-Too found out the strange looking animal was called a hippo. The hippo told them he did not feel safe swimming in the lake because there was a mean crocodile that was eating anyone who went into the lake. The poor hippo was worried that he Flora & Fauna 62 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 could not get any rest at all and he was thirsty and missed going swimming. Polyesnia and Too-Too told the Doctor what problem the hippo was having. Doctor Dolittle finally met the hippo. The hippo was glad that the Doctor might be able to help him. Doctor Dolittle told the hippo that there was not much he could do to change the crocodile’s bad behavior. But if the hippo was willing to take the long journey, he would be glad to bring him to Puddleby. The hippo agreed to the journey as long as he could bring his family. After a very long and rough journey they reached Puddleby. They were greeted by all the animals. The hippo and his family were glad to be in Puddleby. They felt safe and had plenty of water to drink and play in. Dr. Dolittle’s Wild Adventure Tehya Garza - 4 th Once upon a time, Dr. Dolittle wanted to take a trip to Argentina to learn how to dance the tango. He took CheeChee the monkey, because in past conversations with the monkey, he had said that he was an amazing tango dancer. Dr. Dolittle then decided to ask Chee-Chee if he would like to go to Argentina with him and dance. “Sure! Why not? I’ve always wanted to go to Argentina and dance,” said Chee-Chee. When they landed in Argentina, they walked around to look at landmarks. One day, Chee-Chee and Dr. Dolittle were looking at a waterfall when a group of dancers started dancing. Soon people from the crowd joined. “Come on Dr. Dolittle! Dance with me, man!!” said Chee-Chee. “Okay! This is what we came here to do anyway,” replied the doctor. Flora & Fauna 63 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Chee-Chee was teaching Dr. Dolittle to dance and finally he learned. They had a nice day. On their way back to the hotel, a man walking by told them to go and visit Patagonia. Chee-Chee then asked Dr. Dolittle if they could go. At first, he seemed unwilling. “Come on Dr. Dolittle! Let’s go!! Patagonia is near Antarctica. There might be penguins,” said Chee-Chee. “I don’t know… It sounds cold. But there are penguins. I need that for my research. Oh okay, I’m coming!” exclaimed Dr.Dolittle with excitement. “YAY!” shouted Chee-Chee in joy. “Hip-Hip---” “But…,” the doctor interrupted, “You have to buy me a pair of pants.” “Deal!!” replied the monkey. By the time Dr. Dolittle and Chee-Chee landed, they were shivering a lot. “I want--- my----- pantsss,” was the first thing that Dr. Dolittle said as they got off the boat. “Sure thing. Let’s go,” said Chee-Chee who was covered in many layers because Dr. Dolittle didn’t want Chee-Chee to freeze and didn’t think that as a human, he would be that cold. On the way to the store, Dr. Dolittle and Chee-Chee found a penguin. The penguin was all alone. “Hey Mr. Penguin. Are you okay? You should be with your parents right now,” said Dr. Dolittle. “They are dead…” replied the penguin. “Would you like to live with us?” asked Chee-Chee. “Sure. I have nowhere else to go,” replied Esmerelda the penguin. “We are off to buy my friend some pants,” said CheeChee looking at Dr. Dolittle. * * * Dr. Dolittle, Chee-Chee, and Esmerelda, the penguin, all got on the boat to go back to England. As the boat was Flora & Fauna 64 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 getting closer and closer to England, Esmerelda was staring to sweat. “It’s getting really hot, Dr.Dolittle,” said Esmerelda. “Oh no! I forgot!! You’re not used to such heat.” Esmerelda was getting hotter and hotter and looked as if she was about to faint. Meanwhile, Dr. Dolittle was walking around the boat thinking of something to do. Finally he snapped his fingers and exclaimed, “I’ve got it.” “Chee-Chee go around the boat and ask for clothes that people aren’t using so we can make a shade for Esmerelda,” directed Dr. Dolittle. “On it, sir,” said Chee-Chee with a salute. “Esmerelda, come with me, you’re going to the lowest deck possible,” said Dr. Dolittle. * * * “I got three coats, two pants, and five sweatshirts,” said Chee-Chee. Dr. Dolittle put Esmerelda in the lowest deck available to the public. This deck had a window which let in air from the ocean. Dr. Dolittle had made a shade out of clothes and umbrellas for Esmerelda and it was complete! With a big bowl of ice cream Esmerelda soon got much cooler. In about three more days, Chee-Chee, Dr. Dolittle, and Esmerelda reached England safe and sound and they all met with the rest of the gang and lived happily ever after. The Pink Snows Bilal Yaseen - 4 th Dr. Dolittle was sitting with his animal friends on his front porch when suddenly an Arctic tern crash landed on the steps. It squealed in its high little voice; “Some Penguins are sick! They need help.” Arctic Flora & Fauna 65 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 terns are small, migratory birds that fly from the Arctic to the Antarctic every year and back. Dr. Dolittle jumped up at once and dashed into the house to get his medical bag. The Arctic tern called out after him that it was a very cold place. Dr. Dolittle had not heard him as he rushed off …. Dr. Dolittle asked Polynesia, his talking bird to join him on this trip and to start packing. Polynesia was a well travelled bird. She got on it right away and started packing warm clothes because she had heard the Arctic tern. She was a smart packer and soon all the food and essential medical supplies and the warm clothes were ready to go. She was a great talker and went to chat with the Arctic tern. She learned a great many things about the Penguins they would be visiting. She discovered more details about the penguins too. They were not the most familiar ones known to people that lived in Africa, but were the “Adelie” which lived in the Antarctic region. Polynesia said she did not know about this breed of penguins. The Arctic tern babbled on rather pompously, “These are not the Emperor Penguins that the humans are familiar with, these are the Adelie Penguins which live in large colonies in Antarctica.” The Adelie Penguins are identified by a white ring around their eye and are medium sized. These penguins are usually found on the Antarctic continent, South Shetland, South Orkeny, South Swedish and Bouvetoya Islands. She continued telling Polynesia about these penguins until Polynesia thought she knew everything about them. So she interrupted the Arctic Tern and asked very sweetly, “Do you think I should wear my white clothes to blend in with the snow?” Flora & Fauna 66 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The tern was thoughtful and then replied, “Yes, white with a bit of gray would be fine. Nothing too fancy.” With that it hopped off to look for some food. Soon Dr. Dolittle joined them wearing his white doctor coat and his famous white top hat. They took a ship to visit the sick Penguins in Antarctica. Dr. Dolittle was shocked to find out where they were going. The tern had flown ahead to let the others know that Dr. Dolittle was coming to treat the Penguins. He got a warm welcome on his arrival in the land of ice and snow. The land of the wild animals. The birds had built a small raft to take them over the snowy river. The tern led them to where the sick penguins resided. They were covered in thick blankets of fur, and all the windows were shut in their hut. Dr. Dolittle could clearly see that something was not right. He saw that some Penguins were extremely hot and some were shivering violently. He was surprised to see them shiver as he had learnt from Polynesia on the trip that these were creatures of extreme cold weather. He scratched his chin and said aloud, “I wonder what’s wrong with them?’ Polynesia replied that some kind of virus had made them sick. A few weeks ago the snow and ice had turned pink where they lived, it was after that episode that they got sick. Flora & Fauna 67 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 A similar incident had happened around ten years ago and a lot of the penguins had gotten sick then too. It took them a long while to get better, but they had. However, now these penguins were not getting better. All the animals were worried and scared. Dr. Dolittle examined the penguins and announced that he had developed a new vaccine which might work on them. He asked Polynesia to go back to the ship with the tern and get the ice box with the vaccine in it. They were back soon, but, in the meanwhile, Dr. Dolittle told the sick penguins to freshen up as he would have to treat them the next day. The penguins were impatient for the new vaccine but wanted to follow the orders of the kind doctor. The next day all the sick penguins lined up to get the patches on their strong flipper. It would take a few hours to see the results. Soon the whole community of the sick penguins was patched up and on their way to recovery. One little penguin named Stella waddled up to Dr. Dolittle and said: “Can you please take me with you?” Dr. Dolittle was surprised by this strange request and asked her: “Won’t your parents miss you, Stella? “ Stella replied sadly: “I am an orphan, and I have no family to take care of me, I live with foster parents. May I please go with you. You seem like a kind man.” Dr. Dolittle was touched by what the penguin said, so he asked the older penguins if he could take Stella with him. They said they would be happy to know that she was living with a loving family. Stella was excited and after saying her goodbyes to her friends, she joined the group heading back to Puddle by on the Marsh. Flora & Fauna 68 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Ellie Stolyar - 4 th Monty Kitzerow - 4 Flora & Fauna th 69 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Pushmi-Pullyu Ellie Stolyar - 4 th WANTED The pushmi-pullyu’s head is like a deer head. The pushmi-pullyu is wanted for scaring people with its two heads, eating too much, and not leaving any food left for people. The pushmi-pullyu is also wanted for sneaking into food markets by scaring people and not paying for the food he steals. WANTED Flora & Fauna 70 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Voyage Down Under Aidan James - 4 th As a young boy, Dr. Dolittle was always curious about animals and seeing the world. He dreamed of the elephants and tigers on the wild safari in Africa, the turtles on the Galapagos Islands, and the monkeys in India. So one morning, he decided to go on an adventure. “But to where,” he asked himself. He decided to let lady luck figure it out so he closed his eyes and pointed randomly to a spot on his globe. It landed on Australia. But how was he to get there with only $50 dollars in his pocket? He decided to sneak aboard a sailor’s ship that was headed to Australia. So he snuck onboard a ship that was leaving port and hid in a chest. It was kind of dark inside the chest. But as long as he had Gub-Gub with him, Dr. Dolittle didn’t feel lonely. Gub-Gub was his pet pig. Upon arrival in Australia, he decided to visit the Great Coral Reef. So he and Gub-Gub took a bus that was taking visitors to the reef. When they arrived, they couldn’t wait to jump into the water. The reef was so beautiful with its crystal clear blue waters. It felt so good and refreshing to swim in the water after the long boat and bus ride. Dr. Dolittle had heard so much about the clown fish in Australia that he and GubGub decided to find some. They found some at the bottom of the Great Coral Reef. Usually clown fish are happy, but these clown fish seemed sad. Dr. Dolittle asked them what was wrong. They replied that they were sad because some humans took some of their friends away. One of their best friends was named Sugar and she was taken to a nearby pet store. So Dr. Dolittle and Gub-Gub went to find Sugar. They found Sugar in a bag set on the table near the fish tank. Dr. Dolittle told Gub-Gub that he would distract the owner while Gub-Gub got Sugar. When Dr. Dolittle Flora & Fauna 71 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 approached the pet store owner, he acted as if he was sick and fainted. While the pet store owner was taking care of Dr. Dolittle, Gub-Gub was able to steal Sugar when the owner wasn’t looking and took her back to the Great Coral Reef. Dr. Dolittle met them there. All three of them swam down to the clown fish’s home, but when they got there, their house had been destroyed by some humans stepping on the coral reef. Sugar and the other clown fish were so sad. Dr. Dolittle and Gub-Gub thought of an idea. They would build the clown fish a new home. So they collected some coral and got some seaweed and started to build a new house for the clown fish. The other clown fish were so surprised, they decided to help. It would have taken Dr. Dolittle and Gub-Gub several weeks to complete, but with the help of their new friends, they were able to build a new home for the clown fish in a few days. The new house was even better than their other home. The clown fish were so happy and grateful for their home that they wanted to give Dr. Dolittle a gift. But what could they give him? So they swam to Mrs. Oyster and asked if she would be willing to give them a pearl. She was delighted when she heard what Gub-Gub and Dr. Dolittle did for the clown fish and agreed. They gave the pearl to Dr. Dolittle and he was really surprised and happy about their thoughtfulness. Dr. Dolittle decided it was time to go home, but he didn’t have enough money. The clown fish told him that might be able to hitch a ride with the dolphins. So Dr. Dolittle asked the dolphins if they would be willing to give both him and Gub-Gub a ride back home. The dolphins agreed, but Gub-Gub didn’t want to go. So he stayed behind in Australia. Dr. Dolittle returned home, but he didn’t go alone as Sugar decided to come with him. Periodically, they’d receive postcards from Gub-Gub about his adventures Down Under in Australia. Flora & Fauna 72 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 WANTED: Sausages Michi Futamase - 4 th WANTED Jip is a small, white, spotted dog, and until recently, was a great pet for Dr. Dolittle. He is best known for finding the Boy’s uncle. But one day, when Jip was near the butcher store, he smelled something so good that he tried to sneak in. The butcher chased him away. But later, at night, he returned to steal bones and sausages! If found, please call the meat police! Flora & Fauna 73 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 A Serious Case of Mercury Poisoning Remy Furst - 4 th Once upon a time there was a veterinarian whose name was Doctor Dolittle. He was famous among animals because he cured so many monkeys in Africa. He lived in England, in a place called Puddleby-on-the-Marsh. One day he was walking on the beach and saw a large clam. He went to it and started talking to it. He knew how to communicate with, talk and listen to animals, so getting an answer was not a problem! He asked the clam, “Do you need help getting back into the water?” The clam said, “No, are you Doctor Dolittle the Great?” Doctor Dolittle replied, “I may not be great, but I am Doctor Dolittle.” The clam said, “Phew, finally! I have been meaning to tell you that there is a clownfish in the Great Coral Reef that has a serious case of mercury poisoning.” Doctor Dolittle said, “Is that true? Hmmmm, tell him that I will be there soon.” Quickly, the clam slid back into the ocean and two seconds later the clam washed back on to the shore and said, “Oh, by the way, the clownfish’s name is Billybob Jr. and is in a large, pink oval cave with stripes.” Doctor Dolittle did not hesitate for a second and ran as fast as he could all the way back to his house. Before anyone knew it, Doctor Dolittle was out the door with his swimsuit, goggles and Dab-Dab the duck. Funnily enough, Dab-Dab started laughing and said to Doctor Dolittle “You silly GOOSE! You need to bring fins, a wetsuit, an air tank, a diving watch, diving goggles, a fishbowl and a regulator.” Soon enough, Doctor Dolittle was out the door with all of the above. Next, Doctor Dolittle and Dab-Dab went to Flora & Fauna 74 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 the cheese maker and bought some Brie and then went to the baker and bought some whole grain bread. This was food for the journey. The fisherman named Ronaldo asked, “Where are you going?” Doctor Dolittle answered in a jolly manner, “I am going to the Great Corral Reef.” The fisherman asked, “Do you need to borrow my boat? I will let you borrow it if you bring me a sea urchin from the Great Coral Reef.” “Ok, I guess it’s a deal,” said Doctor Dolittle. About half an hour later, Doctor Dolittle and Dab-Dab were on the boat ready to raise the anchor. The Great Voyage Doctor Dolittle and Dab-Dab were sailing across the Pacific Ocean when they saw a large sea turtle which had an enormous shell. Doctor Dolittle asked, “Do you know where the Great Coral Reef is?” The sea turtle answered, “Yes, I do; do you need help finding it? I can show you, only if you are Doctor Dolittle the Great.” Doctor Dolittle said, “As I said before to the clam, I may not be great, but I am Doctor Dolittle.” “I am very pleased to meet you Doctor Dolittle,” said the sea turtle, “I have been waiting for this moment for exactly eleven months, three days, seventeen hours, two minutes, and ten seconds! I will definitely show you!” “Me and Dab-Dab are very thankful,” said Doctor Dolittle. And then the turtle, whose name was Jack, tugged the boat because he could go 100,000,000 knots per hour, which is pretty fast, just do the math! After only 20 minutes the sea turtle said, “We are here!” Flora & Fauna 75 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Doctor Dolittle and Dab-Dab thanked Jack for showing them the way to the Great Coral Reef. Jack said, “No problem, my pleasure.” Then Jack dove into the water and swam away. Doctor Dolittle put on his diving gear and told Dab-Dab to dive in with him. On the count of three they dove into the water. The first thing Doctor Dolittle did was tell DabDab to look around for a large, pink oval cave with stripes. Just then he realized how beautiful the reef was, he saw, brown and yellow, coral heads that had the texture and shape of brains but in contrast to a normal human brain they were very hard when he touched them. He saw amazing gorgonians which are soft corals that look like underwater plants, he saw these in red, orange, yellow, green, and blue, each one fluorescent. He saw hundreds of crown thorn sea stars with thorny spikes on their skin, like spiky ninja stars. He saw scary parrot fish which look like fish with beaks (one of the arch enemies of coral as they eat them). The reef was full of all sorts of large and small creatures. The sandy floor was lit up by the sun rays that shone through the water. The water was crystal clear, so clear that even a sand particle could be seen. An hour later Dab-Dab came back excitedly to the meeting spot that Doctor Dolittle and he had agreed upon before, and said “I found it.” This meeting spot was on the starboard side of the boat on the surface of the water. Doctor Dolittle went over to him and asked him to show him the place. So, Dab-Dab swam for thirty minutes and then pointed his wing to the cave beneath the surface of the water. After Dab-Dab settled down, Doctor Dolittle swam under water and saw the cave. He went into it and saw a small clownfish sleeping on a rock wrapped with seaweed. He slowly and gently took the clownfish in his hand and brought the clownfish back to the boat. After several hours the clownfish finally awoke in the fishbowl that Doctor Dolittle Flora & Fauna 76 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 had put him in. When Doctor Dolittle came to the clownfish, he was at first a little scared but when Doctor Dolittle introduced himself, the clownfish calmed down. The clownfish said, “I knew you were coming I just did not know when.” “Really, did the clam tell you?” asked Doctor Dolittle. “Yes, he did,” said the clownfish. “Can I call you Billybob Jr.?” asked Doctor Dolittle. “Yes,” said the clownfish. “Can I come with you back to England since there is too much mercury in the Great Coral Reef?” asked the clownfish. “Yes,” said Doctor Dolittle. “I will bring you to England where I can bath you in special water infused with detox minerals from a meteorite that crashed in Siberia years ago”. A day later Doctor Dolittle dove into the water and grabbed a beautiful sea urchin, got back on the ship and set sail. After Doctor Dolittle made a super high pitch sound with a large shark tooth, Jack came back and asked, “Do you need a ride?” Thirty minutes later they finally saw an island at which they docked. They were super happy when they found out that the island was actually part of England. The next thing Doctor Dolittle did was to ask a stage coach to bring him to his house in Puddleby-on-the-Marsh. The stage coach did so and finally Doctor Dolittle, Dab-Dab and Billybob Jr. were back in Doctor Dolittle’s warm, comfy, and beautiful home. About a day later Ronaldo came knocking on the door asking for his sea urchin. Doctor Dolittle gave him the sea urchin and told him that he had docked the boat right next to Ronaldo’s house. After a couple of days Billybob Jr. had been cured, thanks to a series of baths in the water infused with the meteorite’s minerals. Doctor Dolittle built an aquarium with sea water and an anemone so Billybob Jr. could stay with him in his sweet home in England. Flora & Fauna 77 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Dr. Dolittle Goes to the Barrier Reef Zachary Rothenberg - 4 th It was cold damp night in Dr. Dotlittle’s house. He and the gang were warming up by the fire while Dr. Dolittle was telling them his dream about helping all of the animals in the world. Dr. Dolittle went to the kitchen to see what time it was and saw an osprey flying towards his window. He opened the window and said, “What are you doing here?” The osprey replied, “I am looking for Dr. Dolittle.” “Well, you are lucky, because I am Dr. Dolittle,” he said. The osprey told the gang about fishermen who were trying to catch sharks in the Great Barrier Reef, but ended up catching spinner dolphins in the nets. Jip, his dog, replied, “The dolphins are probably very hungry.” “They sent me to get help because I can fly long distances,” replied the Osprey. Dr. Dolittle said, “Why not someone else besides me?” “Because you are the famous doctor who can talk to the animals,” the Osprey said. With that, the gang decided who should travel with Dr. Dolittle. Gub-Gub the pig had an idea. He would go with Dr. Dolittle because he thought he was brave enough. “I am not sure,” said the pushmi-pullyu. “You did not like the heat in Africa and it is just as hot in Australia.” Too-Too the owl thought Dab-Dab the duck should go because she can swim. Dab-Dab was excited to go because she had never been there before. That was their final decision. “What should we pack?” asked Dab-Dab. “You should probably pack diving equipment, some tee-shirts, shorts, goggles, and sun screen,” said the Osprey. “It’s pretty hot there. You will probably also need scissors, and a map,” replied the Osprey. Flora & Fauna 78 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 After they were done packing, they hauled their luggage onto the sailor’s ship. “What island is it near?” asked Dr. Dolittle “It is right by Lizard Island,” said the Osprey. “This will be another long journey,” said Dr. Dolittle. He left Too-Too in charge, and they set off on their adventure. They sailed through the English Channel and quickly passed the Canary Islands to avoid the Barbary pirates. They continued in the South Atlantic Ocean to Africa and stopped for a visit. On Dr. Dolittle’s last journey to Africa, he left Polynesia, Chee-Chee, and the crocodile. They used to be part of the gang. They helped Dr. Dolittle find food in the jungle. Finally, they entered the Indian Ocean, passed Madagascar, and sailed north of Australia in the Timor Sea to the Great Barrier Reef. They located Lizard Island on a map that they had brought. Once they arrived on Lizard Island, they got ready to save the spinner dolphins. They were heading into the water, when suddenly, a spinner dolphin burst up out of the water in one of the nets. Dr. Dolittle, thinking fast, took out his scissors and cut the net. The spinner dolphin thanked him and Dr. Dolittle asked, “Do you know where the other spinner dolphins are?” “Yes,” said the dolphin, “They are trapped in a cave. Luckily they have an air pocket, but they are really hungry and getting weak.” Dr. Dolitle swam down with Dab-Dab towards the cave. Dr. Dolittle realized the cave was only big enough for Dab-Dab. He said in a worried voice, “Dab-Dab, can you go by yourself into the cave to cut the net?” Dab-Dab said, “How will I do that without hands?” “Try using your feet to cut it and I will gently pull it out the after you cut the net,” said Dr. Dolittle. They cut the net to free the spinner dolphins. There were 10 other Flora & Fauna 79 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 spinner dolphins in the cave. After they were saved, they jumped up and splashed with joy. They thanked Dr. Dolittle one by one. Dr. Dolittle said, “Do you want me to tell the fisherman to go somewhere else?” “YES,” pleaded the spinner dolphins. So he did. Once he got to the fishermen, he said, “Mister, can you please move your nets. They are killing dolphins, not sharks.” One fisherman said, “Are you the great Dr. Dolittle?” “Yes, I am,” he said. The fisherman moved his nets and went away. On Dr. Dolittle’s way back to tell the dolphins the great news, he bumped into a sea turtle. The turtle started to move away from Dr. Dolittle. “Is there something wrong?” said Dr. Dolittle. “My eggs are getting eaten by silver gulls. A lot of my babies are dying. There are only 15 left out of 110!” “I think I might know how to solve that problem,” said Dr. Dolittle. He went to find Dab-Dab who was with the spinner dolphins. He asked Dab-Dab if she could sit on the sea turtle’s eggs to keep them safe. Dab-Dab came and sat on the eggs until they hatched. The sea turtle was worried that when the babies hatch, they might get eaten by predators. The turtle said, “Can the babies and I go with you back to Puddle-by on the Marsh?” Dr. Dolittle thought for a moment about where the turtles would live. He would have to build a heating device and warm up his pool if they were coming back with him. So he went home to England with the turtle and took him to a stunt show. At the stunt show, the turtle won the show by doing a backwards summersault three times in a row. They got one thousand pounds and he used them to buy the heater and food for the turtles. Once Dr. Dolittle was home, he counted all of the money he had left. There were four hundred pounds. He added it to his money from displaying the pushmi-pullyu and there was five hundred Flora & Fauna 80 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 pounds. That night, Dr. Dolittle and Dab-Dab told the story of what happened on their adventurous journey. They wanted the turtles to have a happy home now that they were with the most famous doctor in the world. Michi Futamase – 4 th Sebastian Mignard – 4 Flora & Fauna th 81 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Hypnotize Jeremiah Koriganowitz - 4 th WANTED Polynesia the smartest, hypnotizing bird is real trouble. She makes people think she is someone else and makes people do things they don’t want to do. She was last seen eating the 4th graders’ homework. If seen call 408-555-8858. Reward - $900,900,900! Flora & Fauna 82 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 City Limits Batool Yaseen - 4 th A few years ago, Dr. Dolittle decided that it had been a long while since he had last gone on a voyage. He decided to take Polynesia with him since he could not live without her. It was a long voyage from Puddle-by-on-the-Marsh to Canada. Polynesia helped Dr. Dolittle to prepare for the trip, they brought hard tack and other things which were needed for the long journey. Two days later Polynesia and Dr. Dolittle set off for Canada. Polynesia told Dr. Dolittle that it reminded her of when they had gone to Africa. In a few weeks they reached Canada safe and sound. They collected all their belongings and went off to look for their lodgings. Polynesia, after settling down, wanted to go out and explore her surroundings. While she was flying around she saw a Canada Goose in a pond. Polynesia flew over to the pond to meet the Canada Goose. The Canada Goose was wary and asked Polynesia who she was. Polynesia introduced herself and said, “Hi! I am Polynesia and I live with Dr. Dolittle.” The Goose said that she would love to meet Dr. Dolittle and learn more about him. Polynesia replied that once Dr. Dolittle was settled, she could meet him. After a while Dr. Dolittle came and joined Polynesia. She told him all about the Canada Goose. He was excited and waned to meet the goose right away. But it was not to be found. Dr. Dolittle and Polynesia explored around the pond and were surprised to find the pond well take care of. Polynesia said it was a quiet little town just outside of the Ottawa city limits, and a lot of people came on the week-ends for a quiet and peaceful time. They saw a few senior citizens walking Flora & Fauna 83 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 around with their dogs and a few young mothers with their babies on the playground. “It’s a nice family park,” remarked Dr. Dolittle. While they were walking around two scientists came to the pond to check the water quality. It was almost sunset by the time they headed back to their lodgings nearby. They were famished so they had a hearty dinner and then sat on the porch to watch the beautiful sunset. Later that night they saw the Northern Lights Dr. Dolittle and Polynesia were both exhausted after their long day, so they both each said good night and went to sleep. Soon after breakfast next morning they left to go to the pond to meet the Canada Goose. It was delighted to see Polynesia again and even more delighted to meet the well known Dr. Dolittle. Her plan was to go into the city limits of Ottawa to find fish for herself. She flew off saying she would meet them later. Dr. Dolittle and Polynesia both looked around for a while. “We need some groceries,” said Dr. Dolittle. Flora & Fauna 84 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Polynesia wanted to go to the grocery store in the city limits, so Dr. Dolittle went back to their rooms to finish unpacking and organizing his things. As Polynesia flew across the park she saw lots of wonderful and exciting things. When she reached the City she saw the Canada Goose trying to cross a road, just about to be hit by a fast car. Polynesia in a flash was on top of the traffic light. The people thought it was red light and screeched to a stop. The Canada Goose crossed the street safely. Polynesia was happy that she had been able to save the Canada Goose. She went off to get her groceries and flew back home. However the Goose had seen the red flash of her feathers and knew it was Polynesia who had saved her. She waited and followed Polynesia back to her lodgings, then went inside and told Dr. Dolittle about her near mishap and Polynesia’s heroic act. She asked Dr. Dolittle if she could live with him as it was dangerous where she lived and about the scarcity of food too. Dr. Dolittle said he would be very happy if she came to live with them at Puddle-by-on-the-Marsh. Once it was decided that the goose was going back with them, Polynesia teased the goose about its name. They decided that she would be named Squeaky, because of her high screeching sound. The two birds would go to the pond and play there all day while Dr. Dolittle packed. The Canada Goose sadly bid farewell to her friends and said she would miss them, and that they meant the world to her. So instead of two going back it was now three. In a few days they left Canada to go home to England. Flora & Fauna 85 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Jip’s Bones Kelsey Olesen - 4 th WANTED This cute, cuddly dog Jip, isn’t what he seems. He is a master of disguise, last seen dressed as a poodle trying to steal a bone from the Dinosaur Museum. He tends to hang out at the Downtown Treat Shop, with his buddies in crime: Professor Poodle, the brains of the group, Dan the Doberman, the muscle, and Nelly the Newfoundland, the distraction who uses his cuteness. If you see this criminal, report him immediately to the police! Reward: £2,000 Flora & Fauna 86 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Mission for Syrup Tyler Soong - 4 th Once upon a time Dr. Dolittle was sitting at the dining table with Pushmi-Pullyu about to have breakfast. Dab-Dab called out, “Breakfast is ready!” Gub-Gub said, “Can I have some maple syrup for my pancakes?” “Oh no! There’s no maple syrup!” cried Dab Dab. Gub-gub started crying like a baby. “Need syrup! Need syrup!” Dab-Dab started to panic. “We can go buy some at the store,” said Dab-Dab. “But store syrup tastes rotten!” whined Gub-Gub. “What are we going to do? Pancakes without syrup taste disgusting!” cried Dab-Dab. “Wait! Can’t we just go to Canada to get some syrup? There are maple trees there and it’s fresh!” said Polynesia who was visiting from Africa. “You’re brilliant! Let’s go there,” said Dr. Dolittle. “Can I come too?” asked Pushmi-Pullyu. “Sure,” said Dr. Dolittle. The Dr. and Pushmi-Pullyu went to get a boat to go to Canada. They needed to get some supplies so they went to the store. Before he left, he said goodbye to all his other animals and took a map with him so he could find the maple trees. They went on the big voyage and they set up their beds. A few days later they finally saw land. “Yeah! We made it,” said Pushmi-Pullyu. They got ready to land. Suddenly they saw a humongous rock in the way. “Oh no, steer to the left!” said the Pushmi-Pullyu. The Doctor turned the wheel rapidly to the left. The boat almost made it but it got scratched on the right, causing a leak. Dr. Dolittle went below deck to try and plug up the leak. Pushmi-Pullyu tried to dump out all the Flora & Fauna 87 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 water with buckets. He had two buckets; one was in each mouth as he dumped water overboard. The plug wasn’t powerful enough to hold back the water. The boat started sinking. They jumped overboard and swam to Canada, which was 200 feet away. The two-headed gazelleunicorn crossbreed had trouble swimming, so he grabbed onto a plank. They got to shore but were exhausted, so they all went to bed. When they woke up, they were starving. They had lost all their supplies when the ship sank, so they wandered off to find food. Pushmi-Pullyu saw a berry bush. He started stripping berries and ate them. Dr. Dolittle desperately ran to the bush and started munching too. Suddenly he saw a big fuzzy creature right next to him eating berries. He turned around and came face to face with a bear. Dr. Dolittle backed up and said “Sorry, for bothering you Mr. Bear. It’s all yours, you can have it.” The bear gave him a dirty look, but kept munching. He didn’t want any encounters with other bears so he went along very quickly. They reached a maple forest with a river next to it. He saw something very unusual. The fish were swimming upstream! The fish were jumping up the river. Dr. Dolittle thought it looked like they were climbing up stairs. They went to the edge of the river to take a closer look. A large eyed fish with silvery scales swam in front of him. Flora & Fauna 88 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “Hi, Dr. Dolittle. I’m Sammy. What are you doing here in Canada?” said the fish. “I’m here to get some maple sap so I can make maple syrup for Gub-Gub’s pancakes,” said the Doctor. “There’s a lot of syrup over there. I saw the fisherman harvesting a lot of sap last night,” said Sammy. Suddenly, a fisherman ran towards them with a humongous spear in his hand. Sammy screamed “Oh no, it’s the fisherman! Swim away!” So Pushmi-Pullyu started charging at the fisherman with one of his heads. The fisherman stopped and said “What the in the world is that? A two-headed deer?” The Doctor said, “No, that is a gazelle-unicorn cross breed and if you don’t put the spear down, he is going to charge right at your stomach.” “All right, but I need the fish for money,” said the fisherman. “I’ll pay you for some maple syrup and a boat,” said Dr. Dolittle. “OK, maybe I can start selling maple syrup and stop killing fish,” said the fisherman. As they were packing up, Sammy said, “Can I come live with you Dr. Dolittle?” “Why do you want to leave?” asked Dr. Dolittle. “Every year when we try to lay our eggs, multiple fishermen always try to spear us. If I go with you, I’ll be safe and sound,” said Sammy. Dr. Dolittle said, “Yes, be my guest.” Dr. Dolittle didn’t have a tank, so he thought why not carve a wooden tank. He carved one out of wood with an axe and carving knife. Dr. Dolittle scooped Sammy up from the river and put him in the tank. Then they all sailed home. Flora & Fauna 89 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Pink Porky Evil Sebastian Mignard - 4 th WANTED This Pink Crier is pure porky evilness. This criminal eats cream puffs. He mostly goes to school to steal children’s snacks. If seen, do not approach; he has sharp teeth, and a huge appetite for pastries, call animal control. Reward: £25,000 Flora & Fauna 90 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Flowers with Feeling For centuries, certain flowers were imbued with sentiment, allowing for the beauty of a petal to speak for the giver. In this way, men could tell of their feelings without confusion, women could send roses of friendship, writers could give symbolic meaning to their prose without spelling it out for the reader. Some flowers may have lost their meanings over time, or the meanings may have changed, but still the sentiment persists, coloring opinions of givers and receivers alike. In the following section, there are stories and poems about flowers. The 4th and 5th grade students wrote odes to flowers and plants, which speak of their beauty, history and more. While conversely, the stories here speak to the hidden meanings of flowers, and other ‘feelings’ we may be exposed to when smelling them. The art in this section is truly inspired by nature, as the 4th grade was able to observe the natural world in the full glory of spring. Flora & Fauna 91 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Deadly Ode Trap Zachary Ostenberg – 5 th In the darkest house reaches, you hear with a snap The nasty weird chewing of a Venus Fly Trap The poor fly was killed and is now being eaten It thinks in its head, “Venus Fly Trap you cretin.” These green plants don’t need flies to survive But they don’t want those bugs to stay alive. This plant is a very distinct green It might look pretty, but it is not what it seems. In the darkness of night, its teeth might seem blunt, But do not be fooled, for they are out for the hunt. And now the fly trap is done with its snack, And the door to its room has closed with a thwack. Carisa Eng – 4 Flora & Fauna th 92 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Rose Assassin Mikita Piarvou – 7 th Alex was an ordinary man who had been born and raised in the United States of America. He became an architect at the age of 29 and a few years later moved to Bryansk, Russia. He knew everyone in his apartment building. Alex was quite confident that he knew the city well enough to get around, and had even found a favorite pastry shop. Alex thought his life was going to be easy after a few years passed because he had become rich enough to be able to live well. What he didn't suspect was that his life would soon come very near to an end... It was the Sunday morning of June 6th and Alex had just finished breakfast. He went for a stroll through the avenues around his apartment complex until noon. He had planned to stop in his condo to have a bite to eat, but when he came to his door, keys in hand, he was greeted with a pleasant surprise. Two yellow roses sat at the foot of his door. There was no note or any message, so Alex entered his condo and put the yellow roses on a table. I think these roses would look nice in a vase. There's a glass maker down the street from that cafe I go to Saturdays. I think the shopkeeper is named Maxim, and I remember one of my friends at work suggesting him to me last time I needed a vase for Christmas. I guess I could ask him about the roses. Alex set off for the shop and reached it quickly. When Alex came in, the shopkeeper erupted in excitement and Flora & Fauna 93 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 started to say how few visitors he received. He then noticed Alex's Siberian bear tooth necklace. “Oh, it's you Alex. Ryan told me all about you. Now, what do you want made for you? I sell vases in one, three, and five flower sizes, glass animals, windows, or anything else made of glass you can think of,” said Maxim. “Do you make vases for two flowers?” “No, but you can take one for three flowers. Why? Do you hate someone or has someone you know died?” “No, but I received two yellow roses at my doorstep. Do you have any idea what this is about?” asked Alex. “That's not good. Someone hates you a lot. Try the internet. I haven't seen this in person, but I knew a man who wound up dead and during the investigation, they found plenty of yellow roses in his apartment.” “Okay, I guess I will have the three flower vase then.” “That will be a thousand rubles. Have a good day!” “See you soon!” responded Alex, and slowly walked home with his paper-wrapped vase in hand. Alex returned home and placed the flowers into the vase. Alex gazed at it and saw an ocean with a boat at the neck. He began to research facts about yellow roses and why the glass shop didn't have even number sizes for flowers. He searched late into the night and fell asleep on a page about a certain assassin who left roses in even amounts at his victims steps three days before he kills them. When Alex awoke, he realized he had two days until he life was ended. Alex went to work and asked any friends he saw if they knew anything about the assassin. Ryan, a friend who had moved to Bryansk from elsewhere, said he could help. After work, the two walked to Alex's apartment and Ryan gave him advice. “On the day he attacks, Wednesday, you must expect a parcel at seven in the morning. When the door rings, call Flora & Fauna 94 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 the police and quietly say you need help, and they will locate you. Hang up and open the door. Be prepared for a struggle,” Ryan said to Alex as Ryan's phone rang in his pocket. “Sorry, Alex, but I have got to go. I have a meeting with an acquaintance. See you soon. I'll be out of town tomorrow.” Alex nodded in acknowledgment and waved goodbye. He looked at the page about the assassin. He didn't learn much, other than that there were twentytwo similar murders that had happened. He then noticed that in very, very fine print at the bottom of the page was written: written by Ryan C. Sol. Alex knew exactly what was going on. Ryan had come from somewhere else, but had never told Alex where, Ryan had given him a load of advice 'against' the killer, and had written this webpage. I will be ready for him tomorrow. I'll have to be, otherwise I will be killed by a 'friend' who has helped me so much in previous times. Alex was awoken at six in the morning by a loud rap on his door. The moment had come. Alex didn't expect Ryan to come early, but was ready nonetheless. He called the police and whispered: “I need help. Apartment sixty-six fourth floor is where I am. The Yellow Rose assassin is at my door.” Alex hung up and stood up. He walked towards the door and opened it. There was a large box at his feet. He started to open the box, but he was disrupted by a small noise. An arm swung from the left side of the door frame and hit Alex square in the face, causing Alex to reel back. A man in black slipped into the room and aimed a kick at Alex. Alex stepped aside and ducked, missing a blow to the side of the head. There was a loud gunshot and a piece of lead stuck in the door. Alex heard people rushing up the Flora & Fauna 95 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 stairs and was distracted as a blow to the head dazed him. He fell onto the floor, but so did the masked man. Alex awoke a few minutes later when a police officer waved his flashlight at Alex's face. Alex was helped up, and he saw that the masked man wasn't Ryan, but Maxim. He had been knocked out and was pulled onto a stretcher. It was over. Alex was alive. Out of curiosity, Alex opened the box that had been left for him. Inside, he found a note. It read: Good job, Alex, you survived. In this box as you see are one hundred and one roses all random colors. Warning: some may change color. I wish you a good life, and by the way, I was hired by your brother, who is in England. He hired me because of what he calls an in-family rivalry. Alex collapsed of exhaustion and disbelief. He soon awoke at the nearest police station in a comfortable chair. “Are you awake? Good, because I want to explain to you what the note didn't explain. The roses change color because of a specific anesthetic that the “Rose Assassin” created. This anesthetic was what clued us onto him, and he killed twenty-one people. He then stopped the murders and the local government shut down the investigation because it was draining funds. We thought he was done, and we have been proved wrong. Thank you for alerting the police and helping us find our killer.” Alex nodded, gave thanks and left for dinner. Flora & Fauna 96 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Papa Rose Sreekar Kutagulla – 4 th The rose, so beautiful and pretty But don’t get too close, as it’s very prickly. Native to many countries in this world It attracts many with its colors swirled. The rose’s many colors make you dream, Its scent is used for body cream. They offer their blooms in spring But watch out, its thorns do sting. They are armed, so be in fear, They are often gazed upon by deer. I can’t tell you anymore about roses So why don’t you go smell some with your noses! Chloe Sherry – 4 Flora & Fauna th Krish Kumar – 4 th 97 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Rushyl Kapila – 7 th The Perfect Spring Day Diana Labonville – 6 th The smell of meadow, makes you feel like you're on clouds The sun shining dully as the birds are chirping loud Thinking of the perfume of different flowers Fresh blooming blossoms, April showers Mushrooms helping trees shoot up Like a dream from which you don't want to wake up Baby animals coming out of their mothers' wombs May flowers reaching full bloom ...Spring is perfect in everyway ... It is by FAR my favorite season Flora & Fauna 98 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Iris Iris Schille – 5 th Blooming, graceful, blue and bright Stretching towards the morning light, So pretty as they close at night. The iris is the queen of flowers, She makes the other flowers cower. Its namesake can travel under the sea, How the Goddess does it, is beyond me. The flower has a yellow patch, This fuzz has yet to meet its match. It can come in a rainbow of shades As the flower gets old, the color fades. If you get one of these beauties, You must make sure it doesn’t freeze. Flora & Fauna 99 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Promise Cheyenne Garza – 7 th Aaliyah turned around in her bed, put her face in her pillow and groaned as the sound of her alarm clock filled the room. She turned around face up after about a minute because it was getting hard to breath. Ali groaned once again, and, getting off her comfortable bed, walked into the bathroom to brush her teeth and attempt to brush her knotted hair. “Ali!!! Get outta your bed,” screamed her mother from the kitchen. “I am. I’m in the bathroom,” screamed back Aaliyah. After Aaliyah finished, she walked out of the bathroom and into the kitchen. She was greeted with the amazing smells of bacon, pancakes, waffles, syrup, and coffee. Aaliyah inhaled the air and asked her mother what the occasion was. But she was interrupted by the doorbell ringing. “I got it,” said Aaliyah. She unlocked the door but saw no one there. In confusion, she looked down the street and still saw nothing there. She turned back but heard something and looked down again. When she did, she saw a single pink flower. It might be Valentine’s Day, she thought. She looked around her street to see if anyone else got a flower. But no. It was just her. Walking inside, she saw that her whole family was sitting at the table, waiting for her in order to dig in. “Who was at the door?” asked her mother. “No one, I just found a rose with no note or anything,” replied Aaliyah. “Oh!!! Ali has a secret admirer!!” chanted Aaliyah’s ten year old brother, Tyler. “Oh, be quiet. I’m sure everyone else at school got one,” said Ali. Flora & Fauna 100 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “That’s probably true. Do you want me to get a vase for the flower?” asked Aaliyah’s mother. “Sure,” answered Ali. Her father groaned. The rule was that no one could start eating until everyone was seated. Just as Aaliyah turned to give her father a hug she saw that he was going toward the bacon. “Dad!!” she screamed and he hung his head in shame. “Here you go sweetie!” said her mother holding a clear blue vase. “Thanks, mom!” Aaliyah replied as she put the single rose in the vase before running to put it on the desk in her room. After about ten minutes of waiting, her family was finally able to commence their fantastic breakfast. The breakfast conversation was full of talk of the weekend. Aaliyah was reminded that it was Valentine’s Day. After breakfast and washing the dishes she went to her bedroom to do some homework but was interrupted with a call coming from her phone. She glanced at the caller ID and saw that it was Violet, her best friend. She pressed the answer button and was about to say Hi but was interrupted when Violet screamed “Happy Valentine’s Day!!” “Happy Valentine’s Day! Aaliyah replied. “So, did you get a Valentine?” asked Aaliyah hoping that she would say yes. “No, not yet, I hope. How about you?” “Actually yes. The first time in my life. Someone rang the doorbell and there was a single pink rose out there.” “Really? That’s awesome. Who gave you the flower?” “I don’t know. It didn’t come with anything else.” “Oh. Secret admirer!” said Violet. Aaliyah blushed. “No it’s not. I’m sure everyone at school will get one soon enough. Anyway, have to do Flora & Fauna 101 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 homework. Bye,” said Aaliyah and went back to finishing her history homework. At school she walked to her locker and put in her combination 33 7 50. As she stuck her hand in to get her books, her finger was pricked by a thorn. “Ow,” she said, pulling out a bouquet of flowers. How weird, she thought. She looked for a note and saw one. It read: Dear Aaliyah. I know you but you may not know me. I am your secret admirer. To find out who I am, come to the train station on Willow Street at 4:30. Hope to see you there. She went to her first period which was science class. After science class, she saw Violet and told her about the flowers. “You should definitely go! I’ll come with you if you want,” said Violet. “Okay, yah that’d be great. I have to go to French class right now. See you later,” said Aaliyah and she turned to walk to French class. At 4:25 Aaliyah and Violet were waiting for her secret admirer, when a blond boy walked up. “Hi Aaliyah, I’m so happy that you came,” her mysterious admirer said. “Drake?” Aaliyah said. Drake was Aaliyah’s middle school bully. “Hello Aaliyah,” replied Drake walking closer for a hug. Aaliyah walked closer thinking it was strange that this was happening. She saw another boy holding a camera, videotaping them when Violet screamed “Aaliyah! Don’t.” But it was too late. Aaliyah tripped on a hidden wire which activated a bucket full of cold pudding to fall on her. Once she wiped the pudding off of her face, an air horn was blown and she screamed. She opened her eyes just in time to see Drake and the boy videotaping hi-five while laughing and walk away probably to post in on YouTube. Flora & Fauna 102 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Aaliyah turned around with her watery eyes towards Violet who took her home and made her take a shower. After, she had her favorite dinner and as Aaliyah faded into sleep, Violet mumbled “We’ll get them. I promise.” Magnolia Megan Chang – 5 th White and soft, as picturesque as a painting The magnolia blossom makes me feel like fainting. The tiny petals are so pretty and light, When the magnolia shines really bright. The leaves on the tree are very green, So green, they resemble a wax bean! In the park, over the bench, blooms the bud, Don’t cover the flower with icky mud. The bench will no longer have a gross stench, When the scent fixes the air just like a wrench. This is something you might like, So go buy one for your neighbor Mike! Flora & Fauna 103 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Observational sketch and subsequent print Sreekar Kutagulla – 4th Don’t Mess with the VFT Ashug Gurijala – 5 th In the middle of the lush, subtropical wetlands, Waits a plant which catches flies with its mouth not hands, It’s the Venus Fly Trap that shortens insects’ life spans. Oh green and red plant, how I would not like a fight, For my life as a fly, you have a very deadly bite. In water, on land, or even mid-flight, When I pass by, you fill me with fright. For the wrangling and wrestling, and biting too Your powerful attacks, I can never match you. In the middle of the wetlands you lure in prey; If word got out, even monsters would stay away. No wonder your name resembles the Goddess of Love who tricks, For when you catch prey there is no getting out of that fix! Flora & Fauna 104 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Spring Fever Zachary Ostenberg – 5 th Dear Parents of Children Who Have Spring Fever, An epidemic has been spreading all through the land. People are constantly sniffing roses. They are also frequently babbling about how amazing it is to live in spring. These are all things the average person may do, but the final thing that made me aware it was actually a sickness, is that people are saying they like spring more than summer! Nobody likes spring more than summer- I think. Well, still, I have diagnosed hundreds of people with the disease called Spring Fever. It is not deadly, but can cause minor brain damage and can reduce creativity. It is found most commonly in children. If you have received this letter it is because your child/ren has been diagnosed with Spring Fever. By the time I’m done telling everyone, those infected will account for a good portion of the world’s population. This letter will outline how to treat Spring Fever, what to do, and what not to do. I will make sure by the time you are done reading this you will be ready to be totally rid of Spring Fever. First is how to treat Spring Fever. You must restrict flower smelling, touching, seeing, and hearing (yes, flowers do make noise). You will also need to tell the patients to be quiet whenever they start talking about how amazing spring is and remind them to worship summer until they are rid of the illness, but it is still nice to worship summer afterwards too. One more thing is to do indoor activities instead of going out into the spring air. That means no school. Spring Fever is also very contagious, so keep the victim away from all but one or two people who should constantly wear maximal protective gear. It doesn’t seem that bad but we do Flora & Fauna 105 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 not want a brain damaged, uncreative, spring loving population, especially spring loving. Now I will tell you what not to do. Do not give them fruits grown in spring such as strawberries, blueberries or raspberries because if they like those foods they will be reminded of how great spring is and it will get worse and less reversible and can cause further damage. Also, if the victim does not know that they have Spring Fever; do not tell them because every time you say Spring Fever you say “Spring” which will remind them of spring. It’s a vicious cycle. Another thing not to do, is not to let them look at documentaries or any television or video games that have outside Spring scenes, unless it is a TV show about Mars or a desolate planet that cannot be associated with Spring. Finally, do not try to talk about Spring in private because having spring fever augments the senses, especially hearing and scent, so the victim can get the most out of Spring. I know some of you may think that your child having super senses might be a good thing, but remember the symptoms. Your child might be super, but they might not do well in school and they will not think of those creative ideas kids come up with that you love so much. If you think your child or a relative could be a superhero, then you are just crazy. We all know the saying “A smart child is better than a super one.” Those are a few things you should NOT do if your child has, or you think might have, a case of Spring Fever. I have spoken about what Spring Fever is, how to treat it, what to do, and what not to do. Some of you may be asking if there is a cure for Spring Fever. There is not yet, but many experts including myself are looking for a vaccine that can treat this horrible disease. We do not know where Spring Fever came from, but we are working to find out the source of it and we do not think it will evolve past the stage it is already in. We might have a cure by the next Flora & Fauna 106 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 time you get your flu shot, so be ready to get a Spring Fever shot along with it. For now, please follow all of the above advice until June 21st of this year. Sincerely, Dr. Zachary Ostenberg Emily Fry - 5 th Anna Sprouse – 8 Flora & Fauna th th Zoe Upham – 8 107 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 You Are What You Eat In 4 th grade, students read a variety of literary genres, spanning the classics of the 19 th and 20 th centuries. Most notably, they read books about animals; in Bambi, a Life in the Woods, students follow the life of the title- named character, a chipper young buck, as he makes his way through the world of the forest, learning and loving as he goes. The students’ stories and poems beyond delve into the nature of living in the forest. Uncovering the secrets of the turning season are poems about the lives of leaves, similar to a prominent chapter in Salten’s own work. While the stories of Bambi’s forest adventures may seem more reminiscent of Alice in Wonderland, they center on the possibility of what would happen if Bambi turned into something he ate. The magical quality of this thought is evident in the stories here, so enjoy the tales of wonder and woe as Bambi traverses the wilds of blueberries, wildflowers and more. Students overlapped an illustration of Bambi with botanical contour drawings to create the art seen within this section. The overlapping lines created new negative shapes to display an inter-play of positive and negative shapes and suggests how the form of Bambi is lost within the plants. Flora & Fauna 108 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 In Spring Ria Pandey - 4 th I am a leaf in Spring Everything the warm weather season brings Soon this adventure of mine will end Because nature will make me a dirt bed As I fall new leaves are born While I look up at the sky all ragged and torn, Cheerful birds sing as they pass by To give me joy as I’m about to die I’m on the ground, full of strife As I remember my wonderful life. Although my story is sad, I have experienced happiness and thus, am glad. Blueberry Terror Chloe Sherry - 4 th This is a story of me, Bambi, and why I hate blueberries. Gather around friends, for I have lived to tell the tale. Flora & Fauna 109 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 It all started in the glade with the blueberries. Mother and I were sleeping soundly after I had romped around with Faline and Gobo. Suddenly I woke up. I felt weak and hungry. The sweet smell of blueberries tempted me, but I would not eat without Mother. I nudged her and she mumbled, “What?” in a sleepy voice. I asked, “Do you want some tasty blueberries?” “No,” she replied simply and fell back to sleep. Then Faline came trotting up. I asked, “Do you want some tasty blueberries?” She answered “Yes, please!” We both dove to the berry bush and nibbled the berries. I accidentally ate a green berry but did not mind. By the time we finished eating, Mother was up. “Let’s go to the meadow,” She exclaimed. We walked joyfully to the meadow and ran and jumped until Faline complained about her stomach. I too felt sick, so I wanted to lay down. It was a painful walk back. When we got back to the thicket, Faline and I went to the berry bush and dozed off. I woke up. I felt strange. I could not move an inch. I looked around. All I could see were enormous green leaves. I called out to Faline. All I heard was her call responding. Then Friend Hare came up. He came over and looked like he was going to eat me! Fortunately he took the big, blue berries next to me. Then I looked into his huge eyes and I was petrified! I saw myself as a sour green berry! I looked closer. I was in fact a green blueberry. I yelled, “Friend Hare, Friend Hare!” He whispered, “Who said that?” Faline and I screamed “The sour green berries in the middle!” “You are just audible,” whispered Friend Hare. “I can hear - hey, what is that smell?” Flora & Fauna 110 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 He sniffed the air then vanished into the thick bramble bush growing by the oak trees. Then He came stomping up carrying something. Fortunately, He did not have his third arm. He also did not look fierce and blood thirsty but gentle and kind. What was funny was that He had long hair on His head, instead of on His chin. Anyway, He started picking berries from the bush. I screamed, then fell from the vine. I was worried I lost Faline, but fortunately she was still with me. We had a stem connecting us. Friend Hare came out and he called and called, but did not know a bird took us away. The bird grabbed Faline and me with his feet. I heard Friend Hare calling until we were above the tree tops. Up we flew over mountains and hills. I was looking down in wonder and fright all mixed together. I saw forests and lakes until the bird got to his nest. It saw we were sour and green so he dropped us into a harsh river. I was frightened the whole way down. We were floating down stream. The water was freezing cold and I almost froze. Sticks were bobbing around us, then we hit Flora & Fauna 111 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 rapids. We thought the rapids were going to kill us, but somehow we dodged all the rocks. When the waters calmed down, a fish came up and tasted Faline but she was sour, so he spit her out. Then the wind carried us up until we fell in a bush and rolled in different directions. “Faline!” I cried, “Oh Faline, I wish we were home in the glade.” Then out of nowhere He came and was about to squish me when I cried, “Mother, Mother!” “I’m right here,” a gentle voice called. Suddenly I woke up. Mother was standing by me and Faline trotted up. “You were calling me,” she whispered. She gently nudged me to my feet. I still felt dazed and half asleep. The picture of Him was still flashing in my mind. “I was having a horrible nightmare that we were both big fat blueberries.” I said to Faline. We both laughed. That’s when Gobo came up. “Hurry, everyone. I just found one of the tastiest blueberry bush you’ve ever seen and my stomach is so hungry I could eat all of you.” I just shook my head and said, “Enough blueberries for me, and please do not eat me, Gobo.” The Berry Bush Danielle Polak - 4 th One day Bambi was frolicking in the woods. He was hungry and looking for something to eat. When he entered the thicket he spotted a beautiful berry bush. All at once he sprang right to the bush and feasted himself. It tasted so wonderful. A few hours later he met Faline. They talked for hours until Bambi said, “Faline I do not feel so well, will you mind if I go rest”? Flora & Fauna 112 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “Of course not,” said Faline. “You can go rest and I hope you feel better”. “Thank you,” said Bambi. With that, they separated. Bambi went to the thicket where he usually slept. He lay down, not feeling so well, and went to sleep. Overnight there was a flash. Bambi woke up the next day and saw that it was around lunchtime, then noticed Faline coming his way. He tried to go to her, but couldn’t. He looked down and noticed he was a berry bush just like the one he ate yesterday. Then he screamed so loud that Faline could hear him and she said, “Bambi? Must be my imagination, but I am very hungry.” She noticed a beautiful berry bush (which was Bambi). Right when she was about to take a bite, Bambi yelled, “Faline do not eat me”. Faline thought she heard it coming from the bush. She looked down to the bush and said, “Bambi, are you a bush?” “Yes,” said Bambi. “It might be that the bush I ate yesterday turned me into the same kind of bush”. Faline said, “What should I do?” Bambi said, “Faline go get the old stag so he will make sure no deer eats me, then go to Larry the great squirrel. Ask him to make a potion to turn me back to normal, and then come back with the potion.” “Ok” said Faline. She ran as fast as she could and found the old stag in the meadow eating grass. She told him the whole story as quickly as she could and asked him if he would protect Bambi. The old stag said yes and they were off in a dash. When they got to Bambi, the old stag stayed, but Faline went on. Larry the great squirrel was on the other side of the forest. It took Faline a long time to get to Larry the great squirrel. When she got there, she was so tired that she knocked on the door and fell asleep. Flora & Fauna 113 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 A few hours later she woke up and saw Larry right next to her. Then she remembered Bambi and told Larry all about what happened to him. Larry was a squirrel with a puffy tail, long whiskers, brown eyes, and a high-pitched voice. Larry learned to make potions from his dad. His dad loved making potions and was the best at making potions in the entire forest. Growing up he would teach Larry a new potion everyday. Larry loved helping his dad make potions, and he still does. Meanwhile, Bambi was experiencing what it was like to be a bush; he felt the butterflies tickling him and heard the bees singing. He was afraid the birds would eat his berries and it would be painful for him. Bambi felt weak because the wind kept pushing his branches from one side to another. The old stag kept on lookout and told deer, birds and bunnies to keep away from this specific bush (Bambi). The old stag tried to cheer Bambi up so he won’t worry about never turning back into a deer. Larry made the potion and gave it to Faline in a bag, strapped, around her neck, then told her Bambi would stay like a bush forever if she did not splash the potion over him by sunset. Faline thanked him and dashed off. When she got back it was almost sunset. She shook off the bag from her neck, opened the bottle with her mouth and poured it all over Bambi. In a flash, Bambi was back to normal and they all celebrated by having a wonderful feast of berries, making sure to not eat any magic ones. Bambi’s Transformation Arshon Keyani –4 th It was summertime, so Bambi went for a feast on the grasses in a meadow nearby. Later, he ran into a deer. It was Aunt Ena. Flora & Fauna 114 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 She said, “Hello, Bambi. You have grown so much! How handsome you are.” Bambi replied, “Thank you, Aunt Ena. Have you seen Faline?” “No, I have not.” “Have you seen Gobo?” “No.” Bambi said, “Have you seen my mother?” Aunt Ena didn't answer. They got sad after remembering Bambi's mom. There was a moment of unpleasant silence. Bambi left to look for Faline. She was in a thicket eating berries. She said, “Hello, Bambi. How are you doing?” Bambi replied, “I'm good. Do you want to go for a walk?” “Sure, let’s go to the meadow.” They walked and walked. They saw butterflies, grasshoppers and other insects. They chatted until nighttime. Bambi said, “I don't feel well. Let's find a place to sleep.” Lucky for them, there was a thicket nearby. The thicket was very comfortable. It had lots of berries and bramble for them to eat. They slept for a long time. Bambi felt as if he was transforming. He felt as if he had dropped his arms and legs. He dreamed of becoming a blade of grass. Bambi dreamed of something falling on him. Something out of his control was happening. He felt as if it was the end of his life. Feeling frightened and helpless, he looked at everyone running desperately with fear. He smelled something very acrid. Bambi heard footsteps of something that did not belong in the forest and he woke up. The next morning, Faline noticed that Bambi was not there. She looked in the thicket, a cave nearby and in the Flora & Fauna 115 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 meadow. There were only rocks, dirt and plants there. She heard a tiny voice that did not sound like a deer’s voice but reminded her of a deer. She thought, “Could it be Bambi?” Suddenly, Faline saw all the animals running and screaming. They were running from the place danger always comes from. All the animals were making their warning calls. Faline was very shocked and didn't know what was going on. She decided to flee with the others. Then, she smelled that very acrid smell of Him and she heard His dogs barking loudly. Everyone was yelling, “It's Him! It's Him! Run! Run as fast as you can.” Faline heard the tiny voice again. It was saying, “Faline! Run as fast as you can. I am Bambi. I have turned into a blade of grass!” Faline said, “I’m coming!” Bambi replied, “No. Don't. I look identical to all the other grasses and He is coming with His third hand!” Faline realized it was no use. She ran as fast as her legs could carry her to a trail her mom had told her about. She fled to a very hidden and thick glade she knew about. Bambi saw Him. He was getting very close. Bambi was numb with fear. He could smell His acrid smell. He was coming. Bambi was wondering if he would be trampled or not. He took His gun off His shoulder. He took careful aim at Faline and got her. She dropped dead on Bambi. Bambi said, “No! Ah! Why is everything dark?” After that, he was no more. Flora & Fauna 116 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Life of a Leaf Carisa Eng - 4 th I am a leaf in spring. I watch the sun shine like a ring. I change from green to orange to yellow, I watch from the tree and hear the bears bellow. In summer I turn brown, I hope I will not fall to the ground. In the fall, I cling onto the tree, I watch the other leaves fly free. I watch them twirl, I see them whirl. But I cling on, Until I get tired and fall, gone. Observational sketch and subsequent prints Helen Corbett –4th Flora & Fauna 117 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Spring Musings Hannah Tsukamoto - 4 th I am a leaf in the spring, Blowing in the wind like a swing. When people come to lie in the shade, Sometimes I wonder why us leaves aren’t paid. Some days there is heavy rain. Getting damp is always a pain. Quite often animals come to the tree, Their enormous size frightens me. Eggs are hatching in a bird’s nest, Babies crying; let me rest! Baby birds have learned to fly They look so beautiful in the sky. Spring is ending, summer is near, This is my favorite time of year! Bambi Berry Zander Collins –4 th One day Bambi was having fun with Faline and got hungry and ate some magic berries that were disguised as regular blueberries. He thought the berries tasted a bit funny, but he ignored it. Then he went back to frolic with Faline. They played and played until dusk. Then Bambi said to Faline, “I do not feel like my lively self.” So they decided that they should separate for the night. The next morning Bambi did not feel normal. Everything was so much bigger than usual and when he tried to move nothing happened. Later that day Faline came over to see if Bambi was there, she looked all around Flora & Fauna 118 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 the thicket he lived in but he was not there, so she left. The next day she returned, but still no one was there. She kept calling and calling. Bambi was watching Faline and listening helplessly. Every once in a while he would yell as loud as he could, “Fa-line”, but it was no use, his voice was too small. Bambi kept trying to figure out what had happened to him. He wondered why Faline was so big. Faline looked like a gigantic, 200 year old, West Coast Redwood tree. Later, while Faline was calling for Bambi, the old stag came out. He asked, “What are you doing and why?” Faline said in a worried voice, “I have been calling for Bambi for 3 days now and he still has not appeared. I have been feeling like Him took Bambi.” The Old Stag was bewildered by the problem. He agreed to help Faline because he knew all of the trails and hiding spots. The next morning they searched up and down the meadows and all over the woods in every thicket, in every tree trunk, on every trail. They checked all over the forest but still there was no sign of Bambi. They decided to search for one more day and if there was still no sign of Bambi they would go find Him. Meanwhile, Bambi was still figuring out what he was. All he knew was that he was small and no one could hear him. He guessed that he might have turned into a berry because he was small, no one could hear him and he was almost eaten by a raccoon, but he kept wondering. While Bambi was wondering, Faline and the Old Stag were preparing to go find Him. It didn’t take long for them to find Him. Him was hiding in a little area where there were no trees, so he was easy to spot. Faline and the Old Stag hid behind a large shrub and watched Him kill a goose. When He left, they followed to Him to His home. They searched the outside of the house but did not dare to go inside, so they left, having found nothing. Flora & Fauna 119 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Bambi finally figured out he was a berry, and when a bee flew by he told the bee to tell Faline and the Old Stag that he had turned into a berry. Since Bambi was so small he could talk to the bee. The bee reached the Old Stag and Faline by early afternoon. Faline and the Old Stag left His house and rushed over to the berry bush where they saw Bambi in the form of a berry. They recognized his voice and started talking to him. The Old Stag asked, “How did you turn into a berry?” “I ate some blueberries that were smaller than normal and the next morning I was a berry. I have no clue how to change back,” said Bambi. Since the Old Stag was so wise, he smelled the berries and recognized them. They were magic berries. He once heard about a cure that would change you back to normal in 2 days, but he was not sure it was real. So they ground up some magic berries, mixed them with water and poured the mixture over Bambi. They stayed with him so he would be safe from any other animals that might eat him. The next day he was still a berry, but he had a louder voice and was a bit bigger. The day after that he woke up and everything was normal sized and he felt normal again. When everyone else woke up they were surprised to see that Bambi was well again. Faline and Bambi thanked the Old Stag for saving Bambi. They lived happily ever after. Becoming an Elk Lily Valdez - 4 th One day Bambi was walking in the grassy meadow. He ate some grass on the way. Then he went to an open area in the thicket and fell asleep. When he woke up in the morning he noticed he was very short. He tried to move but it didn't work! Bambi looked down to see his feet but he Flora & Fauna 120 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 didn't see any feet; all he saw was dirt and grass. Then, when he looked up, it started to rain. Bambi was soaking wet grass and was covered in mud. He thought it was a dream, so he closed his eyes and tried to wake up, but nothing happened. All he did was wish to be a deer again and kept his eyes closed. When the rain stopped Bambi woke up and opened his eyes and noticed that he wasn't wet any more. He was all dry and it was a sunny day. He looked around and saw the old stag looking at him. He tried to signal him but he forgot he was grass and not a deer. The old stag ate some grass near him and went away. All of a sudden he heard a loud thumping noise! It was the rabbits. Bambi was stomped on so many times he just felt like dying. A few days later he was sitting there and saw an old lady with a black coat and she was holding a bottle with purple liquid in it. All of a sudden she tripped and the purple liquid spilled all over Bambi. Then, the next thing you know Bambi was an elk. The old lady saw him and ran away into the deep thicket. Bambi found Faline and said, “Hello Faline. Do you want to walk in the meadow?” Faline looked up in surprise. “Bambi is that you?” she said. “Yes it is.” he said. So, they went walking through the meadow. Faline asked a bunch of questions on how Bambi turned into an elk. Bambi told her the long story of what happened as grass. Faline was amazed and wanted to be an elk too so then Ronno and Karus would be afraid of them. So, Bambi and Faline went to find the old lady in the black coat. They found her in a small open space in the thicket. They asked her if she could turn Faline into an elk and then suddenly Faline was an elk. Faline was so happy to be a big and strong elk. She told Bambi that they should go to find Ronno and Karus and Flora & Fauna 121 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 scare them away. And so they went walking off to find Ronno and Karus. They found Ronno talking to Friend Hare. When Friend Hare saw Bambi and Faline as elks he was transfixed. Ronno turned around and was transfixed too. Bambi said to Ronno, “Are you still going to treat me like a gamin?” Ronno was now afraid of Bambi and didn't want Faline either. Bambi told Ronno to tell them where Karus was. He said Karus was in a cave on the far side of the meadow. Bambi and Faline headed toward the cave where Ronno had told them to go hoping it wasn't just a silly little ruse. Once they had reached the opening of the cave they saw Karus looking down at the grasshopper talking about Ronno. “Excuse me I have something to say to you Karus.” Karus turned around and said, “What do you want you silly little Bambi?” “Now you can stop treating me so poorly. If you even try to…have fun with it!” said Bambi. Karus left pushing in between them. The grasshopper said he was just tired, hungry and jealous. Bambi and Faline walked off into the thicket to find an open area to sleep. In the morning they went off to eat and played with Gobo who was not afraid at all. They played tag for hours and had a wonderful time being elks. Sreekar Kutagulla - 4 Flora & Fauna th 122 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Life Span of a Leaf Krish Kumar - 4 th I am a magically floating leaf that has left my home, I wish I didn’t have to leave, but I shall roam. Sadly I change in different seasons, I hope I will understand the mysterious reason! I shall be stepped on by black heavy things; Everyday, I see flying things with wings. I feel lonely because I have no hope, I wish I had a rope to fly, but “nope”! Bambi’s Berry Important Lesson Anirudh Kumar –4 th My name is Bambi. I was once a young stag and lived by myself in a small forest. I had a lot of friends but my best friend was Faline. Sometimes we played together and ran around the forest. My life was going great until a weird thing happened to me. It was summer. Faline and I were exploring the forest. We felt hungry so we stopped to eat. I spotted these berries in a thicket at the edge of a hill. They were perfectly round, purple in color and looked juicy and delicious. Faline did not like berries, so she ate the grass nearby. The berries were so sweet and ripe. I ate a lot and was so full that I could hardly move. I did not feel well after some time. I told Faline that she could go back to her home while I would rest for the night and catch up with her the next day. I fell asleep quickly. Little did I know that my troubles had just begun. I woke in the morning. The sun was up and it was beautiful. I thought this would be a great day to play around the thicket and have more of those berries. But I couldn’t Flora & Fauna 123 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 move! I was bewildered. I realized that I had no legs. I had also shrunk and the thicket around me seemed much bigger. Suddenly, a gust of wind blew through the thicket and I started to roll downhill. I figured out that I was blue like the blueberries I had eaten the previous day. I panicked and I was terrified. My freedom was lost. I had a new fear that I could be eaten by vegetarians and could not run away. As I rolled downhill, I hit a rock ramp and flew high into the air. As I came down, I went through a bird’s nest and fell into the middle of a river. I was afraid I would drown, but I was afloat. I kept floating for some time. Now I was really in trouble. I saw Faline at the bank of the river. I shouted at her trying to get her attention. Suddenly, I hit a log and started to float faster. Faline heard me but did not know where I was. She started to go across the river and bumped into me. I shouted at her again. Faline looked around, but she did not realize that the sound was coming from the berry near her leg. There was no way she could have imagined that berries could talk. Faline saw a mountain lion on the other side of the river. She ran for her life. Fortunately, she kicked me hard out of the river and up into the air and I landed near the mountain lion. For the first time in my life I was not afraid of the lion. Lions don’t eat berries. I was lost. There was nothing I could do but wait for a miracle. It was still morning and there was still a chance that a hungry vegetarian animal could eat me. I started paying attention to myself as a berry. I was a bright-colored blueberry and very juicy. There was also a seed inside me. I now realized why I loved berries so much when I was a stag, because they are so delicious! I saw clouds hovering over the forest. The weather changes so fast in a forest. It started raining heavily. I could not move from the rain and was really getting wet. I was afraid of rotting. The good news was that since most animals hate to eat out in the rain, my life was spared. It Flora & Fauna 124 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 rained for a long time. Unfortunately, I started to rot because of the water around me. After the rain stopped, I heard rustling in the bushes and saw that He was there. He saw me and came towards me. I was scared but there was no danger that He would shoot a berry. And since I was rotting, there was no chance that He would want to eat me either. Maybe He just wanted to plant me on his farm. Or so I thought, but one second after He picked me up, He realized that I was rotten and threw me across the river. I bounced and bounced until I hit a mushroom. I happened to land on top of the mushroom. The angle of the collision and the hardness of the mushroom made me jump high in the sky. I finally started coming down and went through a bird’s nest. I landed near the thicket where I had eaten the magic berry. It was almost night time. It had been a tiring day. I thought that this was the end since I was rotting and would eventually die. There was no hope. I thought about Faline and all the fun we had together. I missed being a buck. After some time, I fell asleep. When I opened my eyes the next morning, I thought I must be dead and in heaven. But as I got up, I realized that I was still near the thicket and I was a stag again and there was nothing wrong with me. I could not believe my good luck. How fortunate that I was a stag and not a berry! I was free to run around and explore places. I ran back into the forest to find Faline and tell her my story. She did not believe it and told me that it must have been a dream. Whether what happened with me was a dream or not, I had learned to live happily, but to be cautious. Flora & Fauna 125 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 A Pair of Haikus Keenan Dyrby - 4 th Summer Now my birthday’s here And I get to go to camp Summer is the best Fall Leaves are falling down It’s the time for pumpkin pie Fall is here, yippee! Bambi and the Mushroom Aiden Levee-Oshiro - 4 th It was one beautiful morning, I was eating a breakfast of mushrooms and leaves, a delicious combination, when Faline bounded in front of me. ''Bambi, I am so happy to see you,'' Faline declared. ''Do you want to go to the meadow?" ''I would be delighted,'' I said. Together we walked to the meadow. When Faline and I entered the meadow, we played tag and ran together. The sun was about to set when I started to feel a bit odd. ''Are you okay Bambi?'' Faline asked after I let out a few groans. ''I think I need to rest,'' I replied. Flora & Fauna 126 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 As I was making my way back to the thicket, I collapsed. I didn't feel like getting up, so I lay there for a minute and drifted off to sleep. My eyes slowly opened, it was very bright outside. I tried to get up, but I couldn't. I realized that there was something holding me down. I looked down and instead of feet, I saw dirt. I must be dreaming, I thought. I looked down again, but there were no feet. I looked for my arms, but I had no arms either. I only had a rather slim white body. The trees seemed bigger than giants, bigger than they had been before. My thoughts were cut short when I heard loud thuds. A giant figure appeared a yard away from me. I looked more closely at it. It was a deer. I shuddered. Never in my life had a deer seemed so large. The deer came towards me and I knew that I couldn't move, so I just stood there filled with fear. Luckily, the deer did not step on me, but the hoof came very close. I spent the rest of my day being very cautious about deer and other animals. Soon I went to sleep. The next morning, I looked at myself hoping to see a deer body, but no, I was just a scrawny white stem. I looked at myself again and again, trying to figure out what type of plant I was. I thought for a minute, what did I eat yesterday? I might be having a reaction to it or something. I asked myself this over and over again until I remembered, ''mushrooms and leaves!'' I blurted out. ''I must be a mushroom. I have a white body and no arms or legs! If I turned into a mushroom by eating one, then I must have to eat a deer to change back!'' Bleh, the sound of that made me sick. Then, I remembered what my mom had told me. She said that us deer never eat other animals. I wondered if that was the only way. All of a sudden, I realized that I couldn't eat a deer. My mouth must be tiny, if I even had a mouth—I Flora & Fauna 127 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 probably couldn't eat anything. ''There must be another way to turn back into a deer," I said. That night, I had another moment of hard thinking. Would He still shoot me? Would I ever turn back into a deer? Would Faline or Gobo step on me? These questions whirled in my mind until the sun rose the next morning. I looked at the sun. It burned my eyes with its neon rays of yellow. I looked away. ''Is there anything I can do besides worry?" I asked myself. "I could start finding a way to change myself back into a deer. That would be a good thing to do," I suggested. So that's exactly what I did. I thought hard, and came up with ideas, then discarded them until late evening. It was eight o'clock. "I should be getting to sleep," I told myself, so I did. I woke with a start. "Another day as a mushroom," I sighed. "Why did I eat mushrooms?" I whined. All of a sudden, I heard loud thuds again. I was ready to avoid the animal coming when this time, the animal stopped, leaned down and lowered its mouth to eat me. "Ahh!" I screamed. The animal heard my scream and looked up in alarm. It smelled the air twice, then started to lower its head again. I closed my eyes and prepared to be eaten. Suddenly, I heard a loud sound like thunder. I looked up and saw the deer lying dead on the ground. I looked behind the deer and I saw Him. For once, I was happy about Him shooting a deer. Then I realized that just because the deer didn't eat me, didn't mean that I wasn't in danger. He could still step on me. I looked ahead and saw that He was gone. I felt relieved, but exhausted. I decided to take a nap. When I opened my eyes, I felt taller, bigger than before. I looked down, just a tiny bit, and saw a wide hazel-colored chest with a hint of white. I looked at my sides and saw brown, thick flanks. At last, I looked down and there were my long, thin, magnificent legs attached to lovely strong hoofs glimmering in the sun. "I am myself again!" I cried. Flora & Fauna 128 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 I looked where the deer had been shot; it was gone! The deer's body was gone, and in its place was matted down dirt, some fur, and blood. "How did I change back?" I wondered aloud. "Wait a minute!" I looked down again and saw that some fur and blood had mixed into the soil. "Maybe the deer fertilized me," I said. I didn't really care, I was so happy that I started running to Faline's glade. There I would tell her everything that had happened. Carisa Eng - 4 th Berry Adventurous Rohil Gharat - 4 th Hello my name is Bambi. I live in the thicket. Unfortunately the people captured mom and I do not know where she is. My dad is the old stag who is very wise and clever. I have two friends in the forest, Gobo and Faline. I like Faline more than Gobo. Flora & Fauna 129 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Faline and I were walking on a nice summer day in thicket. I felt very hungry so I looked around wondering, “What should I eat?” Then I saw a nice berry bush and looked at it with delight. I asked Faline, “Are you hungry?” “Yes, that is exactly what I was going to ask you,” she said. I looked around to search for the best berry tree around the thickest. It took a while to find one, but finally I did. “I see some ripe berries over here. You want to come and eat them with me, Faline?” “Sure I would love to eat those berries! I used to eat them when I was fawn!” After we ate the berries, we played in the meadow for a while, and then I said, “I don’t feel well. I think I am going to lie down for the night.” After few hours I got up and found out that I could not move, I looked at myself and screamed! I was tiny and blue and on a branch. I was blueberry! I was afraid if someone ate me or stepped on me. Only then did I realize how big the leaves were compared to my size! And I thought that, because I was a fruit, I was going to die soon. Then I started thinking about the life of berry, which was I. Are blackberries, cranberries and strawberries my brothers and sisters? Maybe Strawberry is big brother who shows off his red color to the entire world. It was funny thought. But then I realized many healthy nutrients I have which many deer like to eat. Then something unexpected happened. I saw Faline! I tried to call her, but all she heard was high-pitched sound. So she walked towards the sound and saw the plant. Obviously she was looking for me and was worried as I was nowhere to be found. I was so happy to see her. But, when she came close, I got a bit scared that she might try to eat me! She ate the berries right next to me, and around me, and sniffed me. Flora & Fauna 130 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 By the warmth of her nose, I became a deer again. I could not believe my eyes and was wondering on what just happened. Faline was also shocked to see me. Then I explained what happened to me overnight and all the scary thoughts I had while I was berry. Now that I was turned back into a deer, I was so happy that I ran into the meadow and frolicked. Spring, Sprung Helen Corbett - 4 th I am a new leaf in Spring I see lots of new things All of my friends are very nice Some of them are little mice. I like the pleasant breeze If it were winter I would freeze. I can see the hills so full of green All of them I have seen Around the hills flowers grow, They are red and pink I know. Spring is the perfect season for me, Because outside is an inviting place to be! The Deer Who Turned into an Apple Jacob Walkowski - 4 th One spring day, Bambi and Faline were running about in the meadow, playing games, like tag and hide and seek. Bambi and Faline started to get tired, and they wanted to go to sleep. They fell asleep together in a clearing behind a rosebush, that they found. When Bambi woke up, it was midday and Faline was still asleep. Bambi really wanted to Flora & Fauna 131 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 eat some apples. He saw an apple tree, and started eating. By the time he was finished, Faline was awake. “Faline, I do not feel well,” said Bambi. “I think I will go back to sleep.” “I feel bad for you, Bambi. I hope you will feel better soon,” said Faline. That very night, Bambi turned into an apple, hanging from an apple tree, by the stem on top of him. He didn’t know how. It just suddenly happened. When he awoke, he saw leaves and red apples around him. He was very confused about how he came to be hanging on an apple tree. He tried to look at the ground, but all he saw were more leaves and half eaten apples. He was surrounded by leaves, branches, and other apples. He tried talking to the other apples, but they would not speak to him, because they knew that he was a deer and deer eat apples. Bambi felt lonely and sad as an apple because he didn’t have any friends to play with. He felt cold too, because he didn’t have his fur coat and fat covering him up, making him cozy. Bambi had had beautiful fur when he was a deer, but now he was red all over, except for some spots, where he had a yellowish tinge mixed in with the red. On the plus side, he didn’t have worms in him or bruises, like some apples. He would definitely rather be a deer instead of an apple. Suddenly, the hand of a child appeared in the tree. It was grabbing the other apples and pulling them off. The leaves parted beneath Bambi and Bambi saw the face of Him below. He did not have His third arm, that shoots metal balls that sting when they hit you, but He had a smile on his face, like he was having fun. How cruel of Him to be smiling!, thought Bambi. A small hand grabbed him without warning, and started pulling him down. It was a small human with bright, blue eyes and a smile so big, her teeth were showing. Bambi thought this happy child looked Flora & Fauna 132 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 oddly familiar. Bambi finally realized that she was His daughter. Bambi got picked right off the branch he was hanging from. It made him feel lightheaded. Bambi was being put into a red and black cart. He was pulled away by His daughter into His house. When they got inside, Bambi was put into a fruit bowl with some other fruits. Bambi tried talking to the other fruits. These fruits actually listened unlike the other apples on the tree. “Hello,” said Bambi. “Hi,” replied the pear. “Were you an animal before you were a pear?” asked Bambi. “Yes, I was a fox. One day, I ate a pear, and during the night, I turned into one. I heard somewhere that there is a way to turn back into an animal. All you have to do is…” Suddenly, Bambi was picked up by His hand. Bambi felt scared and sad that he was going to be eaten. Bambi was being bitten into by His teeth, and the pain was unbearable. Bambi was eaten to the core, and He planted the seeds. During the night when everyone was asleep and the forest was silent, something grew from the seeds. It wasn’t a human or a plant, it was a deer named Bambi being reborn into his animal form. Bambi didn’t know where he was, but he didn’t care, all he cared about was that he was alive. Eventually, Bambi found his way back to the forest. Faline was so happy to see him, she burst out crying. Krish Kumar - 4 Flora & Fauna th 133 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Herbaceous Characters Like flowers, herb names carry meanings; Heather refers to solitude and protection, Rosemary is meant to bring remembrance, while Sage tells of wisdom and immortality. So too, like these herbs and their connotations, are the names of characters in stories. When an author picks a name, he wants it to stand the test of time. What would Catcher in the Rye be without Holden Caufield, or Last of the Mohicans without Hawkeye and Chingachook? Whether these names roll off the tongue or are difficult to pronounce, they are memorable, they are integral to the story, and more often than not, the history and etymology of these names is central to their roles in the story. In the section beyond, the stories here are related deeply to the names of the charcters. The action, the plot, the villains are all related to the naming of the characters. Shakespeare was wrong when he asked and answered: “What’s in a name? A rose by any other name would smell as sweet.” It may smell as sweet, but it certainly wouldn’t have the same ring. Flora & Fauna 134 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 King Basil th Siddharth Kumar - 8 Basil was an ordinary farmer living in the rural areas of Saracity, the capital of the kingdom of Lugardom, which was ruled by the ruthless King Rutager of the Centager clan. The Centager clan had ruled Lugardom for thousands of years and they had managed to do that in spite of some bad kings from this clan. Basil didn’t know it yet but he was going to dethrone King Rutager as told by one prophecy long ago. Rutager knew that this prophecy existed but did not really think it would happen because the prophecy revealed that the one who would dethrone a line of kings would be descended from the kings of the past. One day, Rutager made a decision to tax his people more severely than in the past to collect money for wars that he planned to wage and especially, for his own personal gain. Rutager wanted to build a new, luxurious palace for himself and the royal family on a piece of land away from Saracity. He wanted to display his riches and glory to the other neighboring kingdoms. He taxed the people harshly and the people became furious. Basil, however, was the most infuriated at this, knowing that this was for Rutager’s personal gain. The people tried to change this rule but the king refused each petitioner. This abuse went on for many years until the people were tired of waiting for change. The people started to rebel against the king, but the king had allies and those allies helped him quell the rebellion with their armies. Basil became one of the leaders of the rebellion, chosen for his devotion to the cause of the rebellion, knowledge and tactics. He was a wise leader and learned more about combat. He led the rebellion for many years and finally the day came when he was the only leader of the rebellion left standing. The other leaders had died in war and Basil now had a chance to end it all. He had to strike the castle in the Flora & Fauna 135 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 capital city and kill Rutager in order to end the war. Basil thought about all the people who had died and wondered if the rebels had enough men to wage this final battle. After a lot of discussion and reflection, he felt that he had become stronger from all the years of fighting and that there was no choice but to strike. Basil led his army of ragtag soldiers into Saracity. The city’s defenses had not been enhanced, probably because Rutager had used all his wealth on troops and personal gain. The people of the city were already enraged with Rutager and offered no resistance. The city’s defenses crumpled in an instant. Basil and his men stormed the empty city and reached the castle where they encountered a small group of knights who were defeated easily. Taylor Humphreys - 8th Then they stormed the castle and faced a larger force of knights who started fighting his men. Since the king was no longer being protected by the knights, Basil’s soldiers urged him to go on ahead to the king’s chamber while they kept the knights occupied. When Basil ran into the chamber, Rutager knew the day had come for him to die. Basil strongly resembled a king from the past whom he knew from his studies as a boy. This old king had been highly respected by the people of Lugardom but had been toppled by the Centager clan. Flora & Fauna 136 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Rutager decided that he would put up a fight. Rutager had cleverly set up traps with arrows, spikes and fire spouts at the front of his throne. It seemed to Basil that the traps and the fire spouts activated at random intervals but Rutager seemed to know how to avoid them. Basil deduced that there must be a pattern to the traps and the fire spouts. He soon learned from careful examination that there were 9 sections in a 3 by 3 square of individual squares like this. 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 Basil figured out that squares 1, 3, 5, 7 and 9 activated a trap every minute and squares 2, 4, 6 and 8 spewed fire a minute after, for half a minute. Basil formulated a plan based on his new found knowledge. He purposely made himself get trapped at the back edge of square no. 2 half-aminute before fire would spew out of it. Rutager at this time was on square no. 5 and saw this. He thought that Basil’s end was near. As soon as the fire set off on square no. 2, Rutager lunged at Basil hoping to push him into the flames. Basil crouched and pushed the lunging Rutager into the flames when Rutager was right above him. Rutager burned to his death in the flames of square no. 2. The prophecy had come true. The one who had dethroned a line of kings was descended from the kings of the past. Interestingly, this prophecy had been uttered by the old king right before his death at the hands of the Centager clan. Flora & Fauna 137 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The people of Lugardom were overjoyed and celebrated for many days. Basil was made the king of Lugardom and peace reigned in the kingdom…. For now…… A Day in the Woods Yiyun Wei - 6 th You see, when I, Rosemary, was about ten, I lived with my aunt and dog at the edge of the woods in a little cottage. Even though the cottage was small, it suited all three of us and was very comfortable and welcoming. My aunt was the shaman of the little village in which we a were part, and collected all sorts of herbs from sunrise to about noon. When I was almost born, my mother became very sick and asked for my aunt to help. She hurriedly prepared a dish that had an abundance of rosemary in it. My mother felt better soon after and named me after the herb which cured her of her sickness. Unfortunately, my mother died when I was three. From there on, my aunt had taken very good care of me. I often visit my mother's grave to tell her about how I was doing, hoping that she can hear me and be content that I can handle myself well. One day, when I was visiting my mother's grave again, I saw an adorable black puppy trying to protect itself from the wind with my mother's headstone. I felt bad for it, and took it home. My aunt and I took very good care of him, but we could not think of a name for it ("Cutie pie" and "Blackie" just wouldn't do). Once, when I woke up, I couldn't find him! (We knew its gender from the way that he was...uh...formed....ahem!) After about half an hour of barking and searching, my aunt finally found him hiding in a shadow cast by the wall. An idea suddenly popped into my head, and my aunt and I decided to name the dog Shadow. Flora & Fauna 138 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 On my twelfth birthday, my aunt decided to make me a special dish, quite similar to the one she gave my mother. While she was out gathering the special herbs needed to make this dish, I was playing with one-year-old Shadow. I was in the middle of throwing Shadow's favorite ball at him when there was a frantic knock at the door. After hesitating and more frantic knocks, I decided to open the door, only to reveal my aunt, pale and panting. She quickly shut the door, whirled around and whispered hurriedly, "Beware of the man who seeks the night, If you attack, he shall give you a fright. Seek him in the day at dawn, During the winter solstice, you'll meet a fawn. A few more shall accompany you on your quest, If you decline, you'll end up in the nest..." As she was saying this, her eyes were glowing white and when she talked in a much more majestic way than usual, she was floating about two inches in the air. After she finished, however, she floated gently back onto the ground and her eyes returned to normal. Shadow hurried to save her as she slumped on the floor, her eyes rolling up. A month later, I stood at the grave of my aunt. The doctors said that there was a mysterious change in her DNA that had occurred, one that ultimately caused her death. I then realized what the words my aunt said before she died meant. That night, Shadow and I went into the dark forest armed with only a lantern, my grandfather’s sword, a spiky dog collar, and some puppy treats. Along the way, Shadow kept barking at the lump in my pocket, which, of course, was the dog treats. If you were in the forest by yourself with only your dog, a lantern, and your heart, would you be scared? After Flora & Fauna 139 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 walking about a half mile into the forest, Shadow stopped walking and froze suddenly, petrified. I looked back and saw that one of his pupils was about the size of the head of a pin, and the other one filled up his whole eye. I immediately covered his eyes and gave him a dog treat. I heard him starting to whimper and looked back to see what had made his eyeballs so strange. Instead of seeing darkness, which I expected, I saw a man. A very tall and terrifying man, about seven feet tall. "Well hello, my little friend," the tall man said in a deep, soothing voice. I suddenly felt like I belonged to him, that he owned me, possessed me. I quickly shook the feeling off. "Who are you?" I asked in the calmest voice I could muster. "Oh, haven't you heard of me? I am, as your aunt called me, 'the man who seeks the night', hahaha!" I did not question how he knew about my aunt's prophecy, but I guessed that he made her say it. "What do you want?" I whimpered cautiously. The man stared at me with his arms folded across his chest and he raised an eyebrow. I glared at him. "The night…of course…I want YOU to bring it to me!! Ahahahaha!! You're so funny!! Haha!" The man's shoulder muscles relaxed again and he burst out laughing. I glared at him, embarrassed and more angry than ever. "What?" I became very confused (I was still angry). I pondered on what he would do to make me bring back "the night" to him. When he didn't answer, I asked him the question again. When he still didn't answer, I suddenly Flora & Fauna 140 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 struck out at him, ignoring Shadow's barks of warning. Less than a second later, I found myself on the ground with a bloody nose and lip. The man sneered. "You really must control your attitude young lady! Listen to your little doggie! Remember what you auntie said? 'If you attack he will give you a fright'? Ha! Well, to answer your question, I need YOU to go to the town of Garidour and ask for a flower. I have specifically chosen you because of your charm and intelligence. I also need that flower for some…other reasons. Who would think…after so many years…hahaha…your aunt's fate is still tied with your mom's? So go on now..." those were the last words I heard from him before I drifted into unconsciousness out of shock. I woke up the next day, dazed, as I was trying to recount last night's events. When I was done, I sat there, looking at my surroundings. It was the same as before. Shadow was barking at me. I packed our bags, having decided to go on a journey to Garidour. I rushed to my house and, after a lot of searching, found a towel and a large stick. I packed some rice balls, a container full of water, some dog treats, a few gold coins, ham, a bow, and some arrows with a quiver. I know you think that this is a lot of stuff, but it fit inside the towel perfectly. Absolutely perfectly. I called Shadow, who was chewing on the chair, and off we went. Just as we were heading down the road, I looked back at the shabby wooden cabin my aunt and I called home. I knew that I wasn't going to see it for a long time, or maybe never see it again. We trudged along the fifteen-mile long path to Garidour. "Shadow, do you think we should make camp now? It's getting a bit dark, and I'm hungry," I told Shadow. Flora & Fauna 141 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 We were almost halfway to Garidour, but it was dark. I could tell from Shadow's whimpering that he was hungry. My stomach was growling too. We found a nice protective pine at the edge of the road and I used the blanket and stick for the tent. Shadow found some nice kindling to start the fire, and I ate some ham while Shadow munched on a bone for dinner. After dinner, we quickly fell asleep because we were really exhausted. The next day, I found that I was inside the forest, and nobody else was there. None of my possessions were next to me. Not even Shadow. I jumped to my feet, and looked around. Just as I was going to try to navigate to the edge of the forest where my camp was, my eyes met the eyes of the Man Who Sought the Night. He was looking at me with a very devilish grin. Next to him, there was a bag. He ripped it open and said, "You be joining them!" In the bag, were tons and tons of dead bodies, some rotting, and some were freshly murdered. He took a step towards me, and I thought that was going to be the last day of my life. My first intention was to run, but then I realized that the man would be too fast for me. So I picked up a rock and waited for him to react. To my very great surprise, he just set his bag down and laughed. I still held the rock, but I was not as ready as before. After a hysterical fit of laughter, he picked up his bag and disappeared into the forest. I woke up with a start. It was just a dream. Shadow was sleeping soundly next to me, and all my things were there, including my leftover food. I sighed and Shadow whimpered, signaling that he was awake. After packing our things, we continued down the path to Garidour, and managed to arrive just before sunset. We asked a friendly inn keeper if we could stay for the night, and she agreed in Flora & Fauna 142 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 exchange for some of my coins. We made ourselves at home and quickly fell asleep, tired from the day’s walk. “CRASH!!! BANG!!! HELP!!!” Shadow and I awoke to screaming and shattering of glass. We hurried down the stairs into the foyer and saw the manager lying unconscious on the floor with a deep gash in her left arm. Just then, the tall man came, and scooped her up into the bag. He laughed again, tossed the bag on his shoulder, and left. I was left there, dumb struck, as Shadow barked his head off. I did not know how long I sat on the floor. When I came back to my senses, Shadow and I got up and ran out the hotel. A lot of villagers were outside the hotel, asking each other for more news of the attack. I couldn’t stand the fact that many people were assuming wrong things, so I decided to tell them about the tall man and his bag. At first they didn’t believe me. I decided to just tell them my whole story. Once I was finished, about half a dozen people stood up. They were fighters, so they told me, and wished to join me on my "quest" and to find the man. I agreed, as it was always safe to have company, and I realized: Well, I'm just a little girl whose sword is way too heavy for her…I need all the help I can get. As we had no instructions, we decided to go to the nearby forest. A red-haired dwarf fighter, whose name was Monklin, told me that this was no ordinary forest.“Once, two young men went in the forest, and never came back. There were rumors that they were turned into devils. I don’t believe them. I think that they must have been taking a bath and drowned. The strange thing is, all their possessions were gone. Anyways, no one has been in the forest since the incident,” he told me in a rough voice. I nodded and thought about the risks of going into the forest. Flora & Fauna 143 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 When we got into the forest, I immediately noticed that there was a major difference between this forest and regular forests: the trees in this forest were silver. I looked at a tall brunette fighter for an explanation, but he just shrugged. We set up camp under a particularly large tree and fell asleep after eating a delicious dinner made up of the leftovers that I brought and some food that the fighters contributed. Plop. Drip. Drop. Plop. Ploploploploploploplop… A strange dripping noise woke everybody up. At first we thought it was the rain, but after trying to drink some “rain”, it turned out to be seeds falling from the silver trees. We watched as the seeds rained down and buried themselves inside the soft forest dirt. Almost immediately after they submerged, they burst into bloom. They became giant silver flowers with five layers. Their heart was a deep blue, speckled with red dots. It was truly pretty. Then, once we lit a torch to see the flower better, it shriveled up once in contact with the light. When we put out the flame, the flower burst into bloom again. It took me a while to figure it out, but once I did, I realized: This has got to be what the man wanted! This flower only grew at night! I told my idea to all of the fighters and they nodded their heads in agreement. Flora & Fauna 144 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Suddenly, there was a rustle in the bushes behind us. Monklin and two more of his buddies armed themselves with huge four inch wide knives and crossbows. They immediately put their weapons away when out of the bushes emerged a miniscule fawn dragging another fawn that was bloody and appeared to be dead. The fawn that was alive looked at me and poked the dead one with its nose. I could tell that it was telling me to bury the dead fawn, so I carried the dead fawn in my hands and told the fighters to dig a hole. I carefully placed the dead fawn in the hole and covered it up, planting one of the "night flowers" on it. We had a moment of silence, while I was thinking: This must be the fawn my aunt was talking about in the prophesy! "CA-! CA-! CA-!" the calls of an eagle echoed through the forest. All the fighters pulled out their weapons. Just then, a beautiful, giant bald eagle swooped down and was about to dissect me with its claws when one of Monklin's buddies threw a stone at its head. The eagle shrieked and flew off while Shadow was still barking his head off at it. I sighed, thinking that I was very thankful to have the fighters at my side, or else I would have been eaten by the eagle and its kin…or at least ended up in its nest… Dawn arrived. When I hurriedly reminded the fighters that we still needed to find the man, the tall man appeared in front of us. I remembered that today was the winter solstice, so I pulled out a "night flower" and handed it to him, shouting, "Well, here you go! The night! There has got to be a reason you've done all this!" He handed the flower back to me and laughed. "Everything comes at a price! Haha!" he said. The fighters were staring at me, confused, but I just waved it off. The tall man leaned in close to me and said, "Here, I'll tell you my secret, but you have to be mentally prepared!" Flora & Fauna 145 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 he said, smirking. Then, he leaned in closer to me and whispered in my ear, "I'm your dad…" Then, he reached his hand out, but before I could give him the night flower, it floated automatically to the man's bag. The fighters and I gasped as one by one, people walked out of the bag and started heading in different directions, among them was the inn keeper. I waved to the inn keeper, and, to my surprise, she waved back. Then, the last coming out of the bag were the holograms of two graves: one for my aunt, one for my mother. The man stared at the images of the graves, looking sad for the first time. He said slowly, "Well, I guess you should know everything…your mother and your aunt were both killed at a young age because your mother married me, and since then, there was a curse upon the family. I am an abnormal being, but for some reason, your mother decided to marry me …" He sighed. I was shocked and furious with the man who claimed that he was my father. Then, he looked at me very lovingly and warmly, as if I was a pearl. He continued, "I'm sorry to say, my daughter, but you have this curse too. I am the only one in this family that can survive for many generations, only because I am different. You, however, can survive to be about ninety one or a hundred if you can manage to take the night flower to the shaman to make an immortality potion (don't forget to give some to the shaman too!). The reason why your mother and aunt did not appear among the people walking out from the bag… " He fell silent. I looked at him, feeling a sadness that I had never experienced before. "Magic doesn't always work…" he spoke again, with his eyes unfocused, "sometimes, even after we pay a heavy price with pain and suffering, we don't get what we have paid for…" Flora & Fauna 146 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Holly’s Quest Iris Schille – 5 th When Holly, a witch, was just 10 years old, her widowed mother suddenly became ill with a strange disease. It caused her to never sleep, and mutter strange phrases. Her eyes turned milky, and her skin turned a peculiar shade of grey. At times she would be feverish and delirious, and run about the house screaming. Holly told the doctor, and he said that it was an uncommon disease that he had seen only once before. It could only be cured with a magic potion made with ingredients found only in a magic land. “Your mother might have a few books on the disease in her library,” said the doctor. Holly thanked him and ran home to her mother’s library. Sure enough, there was a book on the disease. Greytwist Greytwist is a magical disease in which the victim’s eyes turn white, and their skin turns grey. The cause is unknown, but there is a cure: a potion made from the ground horn of a lyrelope, the feather of a leagle, the tear of a silverhorn, the scale of a slizard, and the wing of a rain fairy all boiled together in a mixture of holy water and a snatch of siren song. Put it all in a cauldron and stir it counter-clockwise until the potion turns purple. Feed Flora & Fauna a victim of Greytwist a spoonful, and they will be healed. To find the ingredients, the brewer must travel to a world called Mirica. To get there, you must write the word “Mirica” on a mirror big enough to step through, and the mirror will become a portal to Mirica. No one has ever come back from Mirica, so beware. 147 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 As much as Holly didn’t want to leave her mother in this condition, she knew she had to in order to save her. She ran around preparing for the journey. Holly gathered water, food, clothes, a tent, and pretty much anything she could possibly need in a new land. She also made sure she made a list of the ingredients she needed to get in Mirica. She ran to her mother’s room to write “Mirica” on her mother’s mirror to turn it into a portal like the book said to do. But, as she was about to write on the mirror, she heard a faint murmur that came from the bed. Holly came over to investigate, and found her mother, for the first time in days, not delirious or feverish. She seemed to sense Holly’s presence, and reached out to cup Holly’s face in her hands. She stared into Holly’s brown eyes with her milky white eyes and whispered, “I named you Holly to symbolize hope. Never give up.” Afterward, she fell asleep and didn’t say anything more. Holly pulled the marker out of her pocket, and wrote on her mother’s mirror the word “Mirica” in thick, bold letters. Suddenly, the mirror began to glow with an unearthly blue light, and the whole surface of the mirror caved in silently, becoming a swirling rainbow surface. Holly took a deep breath, and put a foot into the portal. She was surprised when her foot turned rainbow as soon as it came in contact with the portal and could feel the portal swirling around her foot. Holly took an even deeper deep breath, and jumped into the portal. Holly appeared in a familiar-looking land. It looked a lot like a savanna. Then, she got up to observe her surroundings. It was midday. There was long grass everywhere and a watering hole about 40 meters away, where antelope were drinking, some birds were wading, and a herd of elephants with their backs facing her were bathing. Then, she noticed something strange about all the animals and the grass. The antelope had lyres for horns, the Flora & Fauna 148 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 grasses were flutes, cymbals, trumpets and recorders, the flamingos had the mouthpieces of recorders instead of beaks, and, when the elephants turned around, they had tubas for trunks. Holly giggled at the animals’ strange appearances, and started naming the animals. When she got to naming the lyre-horned antelopes, she realized they must be lyrelopes the book was talking about. But how would she get their horns? As it was quickly turning to twilight, Holly unfolded and set up her tent. The lyre tuba elephants left, and so did the birds, but the antelope stayed, as if to protect her. Holly slipped inside her sleeping bag and was lulled to sleep by the violin crickets and the gentle orchestra of the flute grasses. Holly woke up to what sounded like sticks and branches falling on the ground. She poked her head out of the tent and saw it was still night. Then, she noticed the whole herd of antelope shaking their heads and rubbing their heads against trees and each other. The sound of sticks falling was made when their horns fell off. So they shed their horns every night, thought Holly. She ran outside and grabbed a horn that was near her tent. It looked exactly like Flora & Fauna 149 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 a lyre, and when she tried to play it, it worked. She tucked it into her bag and fell asleep. When Holly woke up for the second time, it was dawn and the flute grasses were covered in dew. The lyre antelope were sleeping, and the tuba elephants were back. The birds weren’t anywhere to be found. Holly packed and started to walk in the direction of a far-off forest. After a day of traveling, Holly was very tired, very sore and no longer in the savanna. She was now in the dark forest, and all the animals she had seen were leafy. She had met a friendly leopard that was made of leaves, and its eyes were small yellow fruits. It was now following her and had allowed her to pet its soft, dry foliage. Suddenly, she heard a piercing cry, and saw a leafy eagle swooping down from the sky. Before Holly had any time to react, the eagle snatched Holly’s bag, lyrelope horn and all, and took it to a nest in a giant tree. “Oh, no.” groaned Holly. Now she was going to have to climb the tree. She walked over to the gnarled old tree, dug her fingers into a knothole, and started to climb. It was over an hour before she reached the top. When she did, she batted the leafy eagle away, grabbed her bag, and slung it over her shoulder. Holly was about to climb down when she realized the feather of a leafy eagle was on her list. She grabbed the startled eagle from higher in the tree where it had been sulking, and pulled out a leafy feather. She tucked it carefully in her bag, and was on her way, the eagle screeching after her. When it had turned to twilight, Holly was still walking through the forest. She spotted a nearby clearing through the trees and was planning to set up her tent there when she heard clanging sounds coming from it. She approached cautiously and peered through the trees, where she was greeted with a strange sight. Two stags, one with silver armor on its antlers and one with gold, were fighting Flora & Fauna 150 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 furiously. The strange thing was that the stag in silver had pupil less blue eyes, and the other had pupil less orange eyes. Suddenly, the gold armored stag lunged and snapped one of the silver stag’s horns. The gold stag left the clearing, and the silver stag sank to its knees and looked miserably at its broken horn. Holly felt pity for the animal, and ran over to try to comfort it. It didn’t seem bothered by her approach, so she sat down and stroked it. This must be a silverhorn! thought Holly. Her list said she had to collect the tear of a silverhorn. As she wondered how she could get it to cry, it seemed to answer her thoughts, and started crying. Holly quickly dug around in her bag and found a small phial she had been carrying for this purpose. She caught a tear just as it was falling to the ground. She capped the phial and left to find a new clearing. When Holly traveled for yet another day, she came to a vast desert with no way around it. She started walking, and came across a rock with many little lizards skittering across it. They were the color of sand and looked like it too. Holly thought to herself that these must be the sand lizards. They were very skittish, so it was hard to catch one, but Holly managed to catch one, and pulled out a scale from the poor squirming lizard. Then she realized she could take a scale from the shed lizard skin beside her foot. So she put the scale in her bag and walked on. The next day, Holly crossed out of the desert and onto a sandy beach. It had been four days since she had left home, and now she was feeling a little homesick. She was walking along the beach, when she tripped over something and fell Flora & Fauna 151 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 face first into the sand. She got up and dusted herself, and picked up the object. It was a beautiful comb, made of polished driftwood and inlaid with aquamarine, pearls, sapphires and opals. It was also intricately carved with little symbols and flowers, and the teeth were carved to look like waves. She put it in her bag and kept walking. After a few minutes, Holly heard a faint sobbing coming from a rock a few yards out into the sea. “Hello?” called Holly. No one answered. “Hello! Please, if you’re there, show yourself!” Holly yelled. She heard a burbling, and the head of a girl about Holly’s age popped up from behind the rock. She had tear streaks all over her face and was still crying a little. “Yes?” said the girl. Holly blurted out the first thing on her mind. “Does this comb belong to you?” asked Holly, holding out the comb. “Oh, yes! Thank you for finding it. That was the reason I was crying, you see. My mother would be so mad at me if I lost her brand new comb.” Then, the girl swam towards Holly, and Holly discovered that the girl was actually a mermaid. Holly gave her back her comb, and they had a long conversation in which the mermaid asked Holly if there was anything she could do in return for the return of her comb. Holy was about to refuse, but then she remembered the next two items on her list: seawater and a snatch of siren song. She asked the mermaid for a snatch of siren song. The mermaid nodded and picked up a crumbling old shell from the seabed. She took a handful of the slimy green seaweed that grew at the base of her rock and rubbed the shell with it, softly singing: Shell of old, shell of past, Listen to my song, Open wide, take my spell, Keep my song inside Flora & Fauna 152 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The shell’s top opened up like a lid, and a tiny ball of yellow light appeared inside. Then the shell snapped shut like nothing had ever happened. The mermaid dropped the seaweed and handed Holly the shell. “It’ll open only when it touches seawater after it dries. Just shake it out and use it however you need it,” informed the mermaid. She jumped back into the water and swam away, her green tail shimmering behind her. Holly took a bottle from her bag and filled it up with seawater. Then she put the shell and the bottle in her bag, set up the tent, and fell asleep. The day after, Holly left the beach and crossed into a very leafy jungle, where she saw a misty blue fairy as tall as her pinkie finger sleeping in a leaf. Holly giggled when she saw tiny storm clouds form over the fairy every time she snored. Holly pulled out her list and checked for the next ingredient. It was the wing of a rain fairy. Holly looked back at the tiny, sleeping fairy and saw that she had not just one pair of wings, but hundreds of pairs of wings. Every time the fairy shifted in her sleep, a few wings would come off. Holly gently teased a single loose wing out from under the fairy. She had just put it in her bag and was about to keep walking when the fairy woke up, buzzing angrily. The fairy waved its arms around, and a small storm cloud appeared over Holly’s head and started raining. Holly ran, but the cloud followed her, starting to crackle with electricity. The fairy had flown away, still buzzing angrily. The cloud started zapping her with static. She kept running from the cloud until she saw a tall tangle of brambles in front of her. She saw an opening and ran towards it. As she went through, the brambles dispersed the cloud. Suddenly, she remembered: The portal was now gone! It had been more than four days! How would she ever get home? Holly forgot all about the portal once she saw the people that lived in the clearing. They were sort of people, but not exactly. They were taller and more beautiful than Flora & Fauna 153 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 any human that had ever existed. Their skin was silvery and almost opalescent. Their eyes were large, almond-shaped and glinting violet like amethysts. Their hair was long, silky and white. They wore delicate-looking clothes that seemed to be made of spider web. And they all seemed to emanate a delicate aura of mystery and wisdom. Even though Holly was sure they hadn’t seen her, they turned their heads towards her. Holly gathered her courage and stepped further inside the clearing. They stepped gracefully towards Holly and soon were clustered around her. There were at least twenty of them, and they apparently lived in the small huts built at the back of the clearing. One of them, taller the rest and obviously the leader, said in impeccable English, “We know you need to get home, and we can help you. We are the elves of the forest.” Holly was dumbstruck. How could someone whom she’d never met know all her needs? She was simply too surprised to speak. The elves stood patiently around her, awaiting an answer. At last Holly said, “Thank you so much. That would be really helpful.” The elves smiled and led her into a hollow tree filled with strange, leafy, rainbow plants. The plants glowed and waved gently from side to side, even though there was no breeze. The elves brought out an ancient mirror and placed it in the hollow tree in front of the plants. An aged female elf picked some of the rainbow plants, put them into a glassy bowl and ground them into rainbow powder using a pestle. Then, she poured a milky blue liquid into the bowl and stirred it into the rainbow powder with her hand. The result was a glowing rainbow liquid that was thick like honey. The elf dipped her fingers into the bowl and smeared the frame of the mirror with it. She also drew a symbol on the center of the mirror. The surface of the mirror caved in silently and turned rainbow, just like before. The old elf Flora & Fauna 154 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 helped her through the mirror, and just as Holly was about to be sucked through, she thanked the elves for their help. Holly tumbled backwards out of her mother’s mirror. It was a normal silver again, but with no trace of the word that Holly had written on it. She hugged her sleeping mother, and ran downstairs to make the potion. Holly first poured the seawater into the cauldron, and carefully placed the shell in it. The top opened, and the glowing blue ball was revealed. Holly picked it up and dumped the blue ball out of the shell. As soon as the ball hit the bottom of the cauldron, it made a blue flash and the faint sound of singing, and turned the seawater aquamarine. Next, Holly smashed the lyrelope horn to bits, which she was sad she had to do, and dumped it into the cauldron with the seawater and mermaid song. The leafy eagle feather was next; it disintegrated as it touched the potion. Holly emptied the tear phial, dropped in the sand lizard scale, and put in the rain fairy wing. She stirred it up until the potion turned purple, and ran upstairs and fed it to her mother. Immediately, the potion took effect; Holly’s mother’s eyes turned back to their normal color and her skin stopped looking grey. “I knew you could do it!” said Holly’s mother. The W Adventure Diana Labonville – 6 th The mild, cool wind was whirling, and all of the houses on Willow Way needed a heater. The year had just struck spring, while the plants exploded with color. Wanda gave up the attempt of convincing her mom to let her go outside and play. The temperature rose fifteen degrees, but it was still too cold to play in summer clothes. Wanda would not wear anything other than a tank top and shorts, which she called Shorty-Worty and Mr. Tank Topsworth. She would Flora & Fauna 155 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 never call a regular item by its everyday name, only by its proper name. "Good morning 'Dr. Burnt Breadington,'" said she as she passed her fingers on the sea green painted coat of the metallic unit. No reply from the toaster. It was toasting two pieces of bread. Finally the bread popped out. Right then the family collie, Wayne, ran up to Wanda, wanting to leave the house as well. He was full of fur and he was never cold; only warm or hot. His full name was Wanyus Garcius. Meanwhile, the not so famous villain Womoly-Wono was spying on her from his "really obvious to find" secret lair. He wanted to take over Wilson, Wyoming. Then he could take over the world! But first, other than take a selfie, he would kidnap Wanda and make her tell him how to take over the whole world! He just had to find out how to get her. "Aha, I have an idea. Wait... no I don't," he grumbled. "We better head for shut-eye," and he went on his way to bed. Once he tucked himself in, his tabby cat swatted his face which he interpreted as the cat signaling a plan, which was for him to break through her window and kidnap Wanda. He agreed to that idea, even though he thought it was dumb. He threw on some dark clothing and ran out of his lair. Once he ran out he crashed into a pole. Even with a hurt face, he turned to his right and bolted to the subway. Inside Flora & Fauna 156 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 of the subway, he read the newspaper. He tried to not to look suspicious. At the stop he wanted, he rolled out and "hid" on Willow Way. His hammer smashed the window with a loud CRASH! Sneaking into Wanda's room, he took her as a hostage in his stolen Batmobile. She was then threatened to tell him the way to take over the whole world. Womoly-Wono tied her up to a chair, taped her mouth, and put a knife at her neck in a bomb filled room. Wanda was very scared, but she knew the way to take over the world. Wanda finally moved her chair to show Womoly-Wono that she would tell him the way to take over the whole world. Womoly-Wono unwrapped the tape from her mouth and let her speak. She told him to make a new electronic device called the iCantSetItDown. It will take over the minds of all young people, keeping them distracted from their everyday activities. By making and selling the iCantSetItDown, she told him, "You will become the richest villain in the whole world." Remy Furst - 4th Flora & Fauna 157 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Brave New Species Science always looks to the future, the beyond, to what may come and how to bring it here, or to life. In the following section, the sixth grade, who study Life Science, tackled the question of genetics and animal husbandry. Like Dolly in 1996, the sheep that made history by being the first adult mammal cloned, these students broke new ground by uncovering the secrets of DNA and the Animal Kingdom. While our students didn’t perform any experiments on animals or go into the wild for live research like Dian Fossey, they put time and effort into telling some thrilling stories about animals and their sometimes clumsy relationship to humans. Some are tales of woe, and some are tales of wonder, but no matter the premise, all are tales of the study of animals. Students in 6th grade were able to use several different mediums and techniques to create one of a kind pieces. From Chinese and Polish paper cutting to print making and Ellen Jewett inspired surrealist designs, their animals tell a unique and intriguing story all their own. Flora & Fauna 158 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Zoretta th Alex Asay – 6 Dr. Fizzlarry Burns had just bought his ticket for going on a plane heading to the Democratic Republic of the Congo. Fizzlarry Burns was a doctor whose desire was to study snakes. White and black were his favorite colors, and he daily wore a white shirt, white coat, glasses with a white frame, black pants and black shoes. The Oklahoma City Laboratory was the name of the lab he studied in. In the Oklahoma City Laboratory, Dr. Burns kept snakes of every kind in different cages and miniature habitats. He personally lived in Oklahoma City himself, along with his wife, Karry, and his only son, Joseph. Three days before leaving for the Democratic Republic of the Congo to capture some more snakes to study in the Oklahoma City Laboratory, Dr. Burns said to Karry, “I hate to tell you this right now, but I’m going to stay in central Africa for two years. I was so dumb, never remembering to tell you about my trip.” Karry shouted, “Oh, Fizzlarry! You surprise me all the time, but two years is long! You always ignore me, and want to get away from me and study snakes, don’t you? And what will become of the Oklahoma City Laboratory? No one will be guarding it, and I am definitely not going to.” Dr. Burns calmly said, “It won’t be two years unless it takes too long to find and research certain breeds! I will try and be back as soon as possible, but I predict it will take two years. Please, calm down!” Karry said no more, and Dr. Burns walked away. Three days later, Dr. Burns was sitting in an airplane, waiting for it to take off. The airplane took off five minutes later. Dr. Burns looked out the window as Oklahoma City got smaller and smaller. As he was thinking of snakes, he Flora & Fauna 159 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 was thinking of Karry at the same time. A tear fell from his eye. One day later, the airplane landed at Kinshasa, capital of the Democratic Republic of the Congo. After departing the airport, Dr. Burns rented a car, and drove to a local lab in the country. Dr. Burns met other scientists there, and said that he was American, and he studied snakes. Luckily, the other scientist studied snakes too. Dr. Burns said to the other scientists, “The reason I have come here to this country is to capture some more snakes to add to my laboratory habitats in Oklahoma City, a city in the United States. I am going into the jungle to find the snakes I need.” “Ok,” said the other scientists. Dr. Burns then went to his car and started driving to the jungle. After ten miles, the road started to get bumpy. The scientist noticed the road wasn’t paved either. People had not cared for paving this section of the road, since people rarely drove to the jungle. Soon, Fizzlarry reached the jungle. He said to himself, “Ok, got to find those snakes.” He walked along the jungle, armed with a crossbow, cages, and navigation. It sounded odd in the forest; there was not a single sound. Suddenly, Dr. Burns heard a hissing. This hissing was followed by a screech. Dr. Burns went in the direction of the hissing and screeching. Getting ready to catch what he thought was a snake, the scientist grabbed his cage and jumped at the animal. The animal took its tail and hit him in the face. When Dr. Burns fell down, he took a picture of the strange animal. This animal looked similar to a snake, but was not. It was like a long rope that was black and had horns sticking everywhere on it, except the face. Its face had a blue eye and a red eye; the first animal discovered like that. At the end of the tail was a flame about a foot high. Dr. Burns Flora & Fauna 160 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 thought it had no need to breathe, eat, or drink, because the animal did not have a mouth or nose. This animal was a great discovery for Dr. Burns. He intended to study it for a year, and then sell it for a lot of money. The scientist then grabbed his cage, and captured the mysterious animal. The animal was not bothered about going in the cage. Fizzlarry wondered why the animal acted like it did. Dr. Burns walked back to his car, and put the animal cage in the trunk. The animal hissed at him. It was a good thing the car Dr. Burns used was fireproof, so the animal’s tail would not set the car on fire. Dr. Burns then went to his seat and started up the car. Dr. Burns decided he would not spend two years in the country; he decided to come back to Oklahoma City right away and study this strange animal there. He also did not want to stop at the lab, since he did not want to start a mad campaign in the country about this animal. The plan for returning to Oklahoma City would go like this: tonight, Dr. Burns would drive to Kinshasa to stay at a hotel, and hide the animal in his suitcase. The next day, he would give the car he used back to the owner, and he would depart on an airplane to Oklahoma City. He would get home in two days. Near 10:00 p.m., Dr. Burns reached Kinshasa, and he stayed at the Kinshasa Premium Hotel. He slept the night in Flora & Fauna 161 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 the hotel, and woke up the next morning. Another thing he noticed about the animal was that it never slept, and it stayed awake doing nothing all night. Dr. Burns packed up, and went in the car. He then dropped off the car he was using to its owner, and then walked with his luggage to the airport. He was lucky the security gate was broken when he went through it; he had a metal cage for the animal. He waited in the airport for about forty-five minutes, and in the meantime bought a souvenir for his son Joseph. After forty-five minutes, the plane took off. Dr. Burns sat in the plane, thinking of what glory he would have, when he will receive money for selling it to the government. He could not wait to surprise Karry and his son Joseph, coming back from the Democratic Republic of the Congo after only three days. Joseph would also be happy with what he got him as a souvenir, which was a necklace of the Democratic Republic of the Congo Leopards, a soccer team. At 10:30 p.m., the airplane reached Oklahoma City. Dr. Burns walked off the airplane with his luggage and ate a pizza at the airport. He then took a taxi since his car was at his house, and finally arrived at home about 30 minutes later. When Dr. Burns pressed the doorbell, Karry Burns came to open the door. She was absolutely surprised to see her husband, and Joseph was excited to see his father. Dr. Burns told his wife about everything that happened in Africa, including the newly discovered animal, and he gave Joseph his souvenir. Over the next few days, Dr. Burns really concentrated on the new animal in the Oklahoma City Laboratory. He decided to call the animal a zoretta, since it was found in the Zorettan Jungle. He studied it more, and found that it did not reproduce and it was the only one of its kind. He also found that the zoretta is not a normal organism; it did not have DNA, cells, or any other things a normal organism would have. The zoretta only had a brain and metallic bones. Its skin was like metal, too. However, its tail was Flora & Fauna 162 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 mysterious, burning with a foot-high fire, with no cause for it. And so, after all, Dr. Burns considered the zoretta not a snake, and he thought it useless, so the zoretta was sent to the zoo by Dr. Burns. At first, the zoo would not accept it, because the zookeepers did not know anything about the zoretta. Dr. Burns gave his notes to the zookeepers, then after reading them, the zookeepers decided to keep the zoretta. The zookeepers then decided to put the zoretta near the entrance of the zoo, since the zoretta was mysterious. So, this is how the story of the discovery of the zoretta ends. The zoretta is now safe in its cage, with no special abilities, and did nothing except hitting people with its tail when they came too close. It did not influence the world at all. The Peagles th Ethan Hwang – 6 Jarl Zuriel and Jette Zuriel are father and son. They live at the Craigbridge Observatory in the middle of the Arctic. Jarl often goes on long expeditions to observe Arctic Pandas’ activities. He has a PHD in animal behavior, and knows a lot about this subject. He studies them for a living at Craigbridge Observatory. The man that owns the Observatory, Theodcourius Craigbridge, is a very famous inventor. He is famous for inventing one thing and one thing only: The Time Machine (no, it is not accessible to the general public)! His brother, Roland Craigbridge, invented the Teleporter. He is the co-founder of the Craigbridge Obervatory. You see, the Craigbridges have always had an interest in animals; they absolutely adored them, and they have always had a passion for saving the Arctic Pandas. After Flora & Fauna 163 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 they retired, they decided to make an observatory dedicated to Arctic Panda research. 100,000 Arctic Panda enthusiasts along with their families live in the facility. It is a great place to live, because it is comfortable, cozy, and there is no pollution in the Arctic due to international law prohibiting fossil fuels and harmful chemicals and pollution to be used in the Arctic. The Observatory uses wind turbines and solar panels to power their computers, buildings, vehicles, and just about anything that requires electricity. They only use organic wrappers and so their garbage is eco-friendly and is used again to package other things. The Craigbridge Observatory is huge to start off with. It is a mind-blowing five square miles. According to Jarl and Jette, the place is world-class. There is Craigbrige Academy there, rated one of the “premier” schools, which means that they have been internationally recognized as one of the top 30 schools in the world. Jette, because his dad is an employee, gets to go to Craigbridge Academy. According to him, the only downside to living in Craigbridge Observatory is that he does not get to always see his dad. Jarl and his team (the Arctic Panda activity team), go on expeditions every few months. They are generally gone for about 3 months at a time, but this was a special case. The team had encountered a species of panda they had never seen before! The species they had found, instead of being black and white, was gold and silver. This was decent news for the team, but since over 2,000 species of pandas have been found, this was not news that would shock the world. He did their usual observations: what the panda ate, took a sample of its DNA, where the panda slept, where its home was, etc. It was all pretty fascinating, and it was time to send a report back to headquarters. Flora & Fauna 164 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Jarl’s message: “We have found a mysterious panda species, given that they are gold and silver. I have attached a report of this species. Also, feel free to come over! The coordinates are: 90°N, 0°W.” Just as he was about to hit send, the ground started to shake. Jarl wanted to know what it was, because he might be able to add it to his report. He also thought it was quite weird because the arctic had not had an earthquake since the start of the 22nd century. Suddenly, a cage crashed over him and the rest of his team was put in captivity. He saw a huge eagle that had glasses and wore a suit and tie. He was about 15 feet tall, and very intimidating. He could feel his heartbeat rising. Looking around, he saw very complex models and creations. This signified that they were very intelligent creatures. Jarl’s training had taught him to stay calm. He attempted to do this, but it was quite difficult since there was a huge eagle standing over him. He decided to try to be friendly to the eagle, since he did not have much choice. Jarl stammered, “I come in peace.” The eagle asked “Who are you and what do you want?” “I am part of the Craigbridge Observatory and our goal is to save and research the Pandas. My name is Jarl Zuriel, and I am head of the Panda Activity team. We saw a gold and silver panda earlier, and we decided to do some research on it. Who are you?” The half-eagle replied, “My name is Ego, and I am the King of all the Eagles that live here. At one point, we were a tribe that was made up of eagles and men, all bonded fondly with each other. One day, a sorcerer named Merlin came along and asked us for one wish that he could grant. We had done a great kindness for him and he was repaying the favor. We wished to be one, for us to merge as one being. Now everyone in the kingdom is part eagle, part human. As for the gold and silver panda that you saw earlier, that was one of our decoys, and not a living, breathing panda, so don’t get too excited about that being a Flora & Fauna 165 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 new discovery. Now that you have proven your worthiness, by speaking innocent words and proven you have a good will and cause, you may be released.” At that moment, the cages lifted and the team saw a huge kingdom full of part eagle, part human beings. Jarl breathed a sign of relief. They decided to name them Peagles. Everything looked normal, they had a dining hall, a storage room, housing, beds, even showers! Ego offered to explain. He said, “As I told you before, we were merged into one being. This allowed us to fly and do human activities, making it very convenient. We wanted to become part of the human civilization and to be accepted, but we were afraid that people would put us in zoos and keep us in captivity. We were outraged at this thought, and we want you to help reveal our tribe to the world. We mean to help the world, not to harm it.” Jarl quickly promised that they would help and do their best. Ego was very happy with this, so he fed them all sorts of goodies that they grew and ate in the arctic. Some of them include arctic melon, which is super sweet, and also fresh arctic bread, which is topped with syrup from the Arctic Maple, a special tree that only grows in the arctic and has a very delicious and sweet, yet healthy at the same time. One of Jarl’s teammates from Japan declared it Flora & Fauna 166 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “umami,” or delicious. Jarl’s favorite dish was the Infinity Fish, which lived in the infinity pool (it was shaped in an infinity sign). While they were eating, Jarl asked Ego some questions: “Why did you decide to live in the Arctic?” Ego replied, “We lived peacefully before in Norway, but then after we merged, we were afraid people would hunt us down and harm us. We decided to go into hiding in the Arctic, whence no one would come to disturb us, but then you came along and we tried to lure you to meet us, while still giving us the upper hand if you meant to hurt us, so we made the gold and silver panda. We used that to lure you in, and then we deployed our traps.” Jarl agreed this was a very cunning plan, but he also had to make a plan for how to introduce the Peagles. Everybody knew about the Craigbridge observatory, so they would first bring the news to the observatory. Everyone loved animals there, so introducing the Peagles to them would not be a problem. The observatory would then announce their discovery. They decided to start tomorrow, early in the morning. Jarl quickly sent a message to the Craigbridges and to his son, Jette. They all prepared at headquarters for this event, and they said they would welcome the guests. Jarl was overjoyed that his plan was working. They walked back to the observatory with great pride in what they did. Only Ego went with Jarl and his crew, but the rest of the Peagles were a few days behind so they would arrive after Ego had introduced them. Everyone at the observatory had prepared a party for the Peagles. The World’s Fair happened to be on April 1, 2125, so Jarl, with the help of the famous Craigbridges, arranged to be apart of it and to introduce the Peagles. It was a huge success, and everyone was fascinated by Peages, and everyone was willing to have them as equals! Since there had been much success, Jarl and the Craigbridges asked Ego what his dream was for the Peagles to fit in with the humans. Flora & Fauna 167 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Ego exclaimed passionately, “My dream is that Peagles will live as equals with humans. I think it would be a good idea if we start a new country where we may live! We would be honored if we may live either in a country where humans are currently living, such as the United States or Germany, or to live in a separate country, where humans will absolutely be welcome to stay as well.” To satisfy the requests of Ego, the Craigbridges and Jarl flew to New York, New York, where they went to the meeting at the United Nations. They gave an invitation, which requested for Peagles to live in their country, along with a Peagle which was willing to answer any questions that the countries had about their culture, species, etc. Every country decided to have a vote on this on April 30, 2125. Also, Ego wanted for Peagles to have their own country, so countries in Africa volunteered to let some of their land to be donated to the Peagles. Humans did not really like the hot, dry desert, but the Peagles loved it since they were able to fly around freely, but be warm again after living in the Arctic for hundreds of years. The voting was almost unanimous in favor of the Peagles, so Peagles lived side by side with humans. They fit in almost perfectly: Peagles became government officials (they were just as intelligent as humans!), they had their own sport team (some of them even joined the soccer, baseball, football, and hockey leagues), and their country was just as economically fit as any other country. Twenty-five years later, in the year 2150, the Peagles and humans first stepped foot on Kepler 22b, a planet in the hospitable zone that has an average temperature of about 70°F. Life should be possible on Kepler 22b, and it is about two times larger than Earth. Humans and Peagles lived here in harmony ever since. Flora & Fauna 168 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 th Gisele Inaba – 6 th Ryan Garvey – 6 Flora & Fauna 169 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Arctic Monkey th Amir Zahiroleslam – 6 Hello, this is Brandon, the monkey who lives in the arctic. I’m the only monkey who lives here and nobody knows how I came to live and be born here. I am about ten years old and all my body is pitch black, except my eyes, which are red. My mom disappeared right after she gave birth to me and I never knew my dad. My two best friends are Oliver, who is an arctic hare, and Daniel, who is an arctic fox. We didn’t meet at any type of school; there is no school in the arctic; we met when we were barely born. I was crying in my mother’s hut when Daniel’s dad (who was hunting) found me and brought me home to their village. My mother had left my name on a piece of paper on her bed. From then on I was raised by Daniel’s family; but Oliver’s family lived right next to Daniel. So from then on, we were the closest of friends. Everyone in the village was nice and welcoming, except the snowy owl who lived in this tiny house at the end of the village. He never let anyone in his house and never left it either. He had people deliver food in parcels and leave it at the door. But some people said that he was so old and wise, that he could see into the future. My friends and I knew that that was a bunch of baloney, people probably said that to make him sound more mysterious. One day we were going to go sledding, when we got cornered by Slub, a polar bear. He was a bully who liked to push kids into the freezing water and make them do dares. Today he was feeling happy, so he gave us a choice: go to the snowy owl, or jump in the freezing cold water. I tried to make a run for it so I could tell someone what was happening, when he pinned me down. “Not so fast, monkey boy,” he said. I decided to jump in the water alone, so Oliver and Daniel didn’t have to. Flora & Fauna 170 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “Slub, let them go, I’ll jump in.” “Fine!” He let them go and they ran away. I met their eyes with a look that said, “Do not tell anyone I am here.” They nodded and ran away while I got ready to jump. I got on the edge of the water and wondered if I should try to run away, when I felt two furry hands on my back and the next thing I knew, I landed in the water with a splash. The water was so cold, I couldn’t move any of my body parts except my hands, which I used to tread water with. I had never felt so cold in my whole life, my vision was blurred and then, nothing. When I woke up, I didn’t feel cold at all, and thought I was at home. I opened my eyes and I realized I was floating on the water right next to where I jumped. How was I warm? Warmth spread throughout all my body, giving me energy. I breathed a sigh of relief. Instead of air coming out of my mouth, fire did. I breathed again, but harder, at the sky, and a jet of fire came out of my mouth. I swam to shore, amazed at my new ability. When I started walking home, I heard screams and cries of the entire village. I ran as fast as I could towards the sound, but it was hopeless because the village was two miles away, near the shore. When I finally reached it, it looked like everybody had left. “Hello?” I shouted. “Anyone here?” No one answered. Then I saw a ship next to the coastline (which was off limits to the animal children because polar bears would catch fish there). I saw two pale creatures with two legs, two hands, but no tail, start running after me. One of them had some type of white cloth on. The other had a form of stick in their hands but I couldn’t see it very well. I saw an object shoot out of the stick, I felt an excruciating pain before I saw something like a dart protruding out of my arm, and I passed out. Flora & Fauna 171 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 When I came to, I felt a rocking motion all around me and I was nauseous. I heard familiar voices around me, but I was too disoriented to place any particular individual. Someone yelled, “Hey look, Brandon’s awake!” I realized that Oliver had yelled that. When I looked around, I saw the faces of the villagers. We were all locked up in cages. Then the same creature who wore the white cloth walked in and started looking at all of us. When it came to me, it started muttering. It left and came back with a tube and a needle filled with liquid and injected it into everyone. We felt drowsy, and fell asleep. The last thing I remembered was that the creature took some blood from my shoulder. When I woke up, I didn’t know where I was. I was in a room with the villagers and a group of monkeys. I felt so excited! I went up to the monkeys and said,“Hello.” One of the females looked familiar and I didn’t know why but then I realized she looked a bit like me. She had a black body; a little lighter than mine; but it covered her except her brown eyes. She looked at me when I came near her and her eyes burst with joy. She shouted, “My son, at last, my son. Brandon, how are you doing? Do you remember me? I’m your mother.” I nodded. “Mom? Where’s dad? Is he here too?” “Of course I am, sonny,” answered one of the other monkeys in a gruff voice. That was when I noticed the red eyes of the monkey who had just answered me. They were a deep red, the color of blood, the same color as mine. The monkey was very buffed with muscular and broad shoulders. I couldn’t believe I had finally found my parents. We spent the next few hours sharing our stories. I learned that my mom and dad had once lived together in the Arctic. When I was born, the two-legged creatures had come and captured them, but before they were captured, my parents had hidden me in their hut. Throughout the time of their capture, they had been experimented on by the creatures, Flora & Fauna 172 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 which I learned were humans, an evil race, led by the creature in the white cloth, who was a scientist. Before we had time to share any details, the scientist came and took me away. I tried to push his hand off so I could go back to my parents, but he had an iron grip. Then he whipped me with something made of leather. It hurt so bad, it burned. I felt my back where he whipped me and felt a groove. Anger boiled my blood. Roaring pounded my ears. I felt so much anger that this human had hurt me. I opened my mouth and blew out as much fire as I could. The man dropped me out of surprise and barely made it to the exit. I ran to the room where all the villagers and my parents were being kept and melted the door. Everyone looked at me in surprise. I led the way out of the room following the way the scientist took me and to the exit. When we looked around we were in the same ship that had appeared at the arctic but now we were at a jungle. We got out of the boat and escaped into the mass of trees ahead of us. th Gisele Inaba – 6 Flora & Fauna 173 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The SST th Tai Nguyen – 6 Sednity was siting at his desk drinking his usual coffee: café latte. Sednity was a man who hated anything he was forced to do; he hated his future. He was studying the latest sightings of the extremely rare SST, or the Shape Shifting Thing. The latest sightings of this bizarre creature were in the icy winds of the arctic. A man named Ginkgo spotted the latest reports. He supposedly saw a dark beast lumbering towards the sea and then turning into a seal. Then in a flash, the seal turned into a polar bear and it rushed straight at him. Ginkgo said, “It was something I have never seen before. It was dreadful, simply dreadful. I was very frightened, so I grabbed my gun and shot it. The bullet didn’t do anything except enrage the beast. So it charged straight at me, and I fainted.” Sednity took this into real consideration. If he went to the arctic and talked to Ginkgo himself, he could find better clues to discovering the SST. This would make him famous and rich, but he didn’t want that. He wanted something greater than fame and wealth. He wanted to shape shift. And with the SST’s help, he could make it happen. It was 9:18 p.m. and Sednity was boarding flight 8759 Air Arctic. The wind was howling in Ontario, Canada. Once in his seat, he ordered a café latte and immediately started drinking the coffee. Around 5:30 a.m. he landed in Alert Airport. This airport is technically a military airport but he got VIP access to all airports in Canada from the Canadian president for helping the president in shutting down terrorist groups. It was -5 degrees Celsius outside and the snow was falling heavily. Sednity got into a truck and it drove him to a boat by the port. Then the boat set sail for the North Pole. Flora & Fauna 174 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 It was dark, chilly and silent outside. The waves were rolling softly outside. The only sound to be heard was the boat’s low humming engine. Suddenly, the boat rocked violently. Sednity was holding the rail to keep balance. He yelled, “What’s happening captain?” “We don’t know sir, but it seems like something big under our boat. We must anchor here sir, or else the ship will be flipped by this mad thing.” A smile lit up Sednity’s face. “No, keep sailing. I will go down into the water to see what’s causing this trouble. Just bring me a diving suit and an oxygen tank.” “Right away sir, but don’t say I didn’t warn you.” The crew came and helped Sednity change into the scuba gear. And in no time, Sednity was in the water. It was dark and cold in the water. As Sednity went down, he saw something move along the other side of the boat. He swam near it and saw a walrus nudging the boat with his huge tusks. It must be a regular walrus, thought Sednity. Just when he was about to leave, the walrus shook and turned into an orca. It swam right towards him. Sednity swam away in horror of what he had seen. He had just witnessed the SST. Just as excitement began to take over his fear, the orca bit the oxygen tank open. Bubbles burst into the dark water and fear struck his heart. He only had a few seconds to reach the surface until he drowned. As he neared the surface, the orca grabbed him and dragged him down to the depths of the sea again. Air began to tighten, as his head started to spin. A hideous cry yelled out and all was pitch black. * * * * * * * Sednity heard voices in the distance. They sounded like laughs. Flora & Fauna 175 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 He slowly opened his eyes and saw a man soaked in water and the captain. “Great! You’re alive sir. We thought you were a goner. Good thing Roebuck here jumped after you,” cried the captain. “Whh-h-y did he jump after m-me-ee?” asked Sednity, teeth chattering. “Not now, I’ll tell you the whole story later, but first we must get you and Roebuck dried and warmed.” After both men were warm, the captain explained, “It had been more than half an hour when we finally saw your bubbles, but we didn’t see you. We thought that you must’ve still been repairing the damages that varmint did to our ship. But it was another thirty minutes that passed, and so I got worried and sent Roebuck here, to get you. He’s basically a rookie military photographer, and he wanted to get some pictures of the sea, to help him work on his technique of taking pictures. Lucky for you, he found you pretty quickly, but with a whale circling you. He took pictures of the whale and the flash probably scared him off, so it was easy to get you back up to the ship.” “Thank you Roebuck, for saving my life. Someday I will repay you.” “No problem sir, just another of my duties; To Serve and Protect,” replied Roebuck smiling delightfully. They all had a cheerful talk during dinner and soon fell asleep. Around 8:49 a.m., the captain yelled “Land HOOOOOOO!” Everyone was excited to see the Arctic for the first time. When the ship was anchored and docked, Sednity got off and said goodbye. He traveled a few miles when he came to a small town. In the town, he asked for a sled dog ride to Ginkgo’s house. Flora & Fauna 176 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 In a matter of minutes, he was at Ginkgo’s “house.” It was a huge igloo covered in ice crystals and a fresh sheet of powdered snow. Sednity was welcomed warmly and was told many details about Ginkgo’s sighting of the SST. But Ginkgo seemed unsure about many things he had seen. He said that it was like one of his child’s nightmares. “To learn more about this thing, go to the Great Cryalt’s home, and he will tell you about the many unique features of this thing. The Great Cryalt has studied the SST for many years. During the first twenty years of his life, he found out a lot about this thing’s habits and way of life. For the last seventy years he has been trying to catch the thing. He is the man you should seek out.” * * * * * * * Sednity set out and found the Great Cryalt at the center of nowhere. The hut was a small and humble hut made up of delicate gleaming stones. Sednity entered the hut quietly and found the old man sitting among a huge pile of books. “Excuse me, sir, do you mind if I use a little of your time?” The man said nothing but shook his head indifferently. “Thank you, sir. Can you please tell me the purpose, and effectiveness of the Shape Shifting Thing?” The man looked curiously and smiled. “You look for thing too?” “Yes sir. I am.” “Thing no purpose. On land disturb animals’ peace. Gobbles food like hungry man. Can wipe out all animals. Very hard to find. Lives deep in the shelter of the mountains. Lurks up to the town to steal food every three days. Very dangerous. Can be people, or animal. Thing can change at will. Secret is deep. Only I know this much. Now idle people of town eat and talk, no one worry about Flora & Fauna 177 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 thing coming and taking food. Must be stopped. Our food storage is low. Must kill thing!” “Is there not another way to stop the SST? We can try to tranquilize it and bring it to the zoo or the pound; maybe we can put him on a tour? But I don’t want to kill it,” said Sednity. The old man looked at Sednity very carefully and then asked, “Why you want to save a danger to mankind. He cause only mayhem.” Sednity knew his reason to save the thing, but he didn’t want to say it. “I dunno, but I really want to study the thing,” replied Sednity quickly. Then the old man showed Sednity how to catch the thing using his wit and strength. The next day, Sednity set off to find the thing. He crossed frozen plains, and solid lakes. He endured blistering winds and burning cold snow. He climbed to the highest mountain and saw a huge cave filled with amber and precious gems. He quickly climbed down and entered the cave. Inside was warm and the cave sparkled brightly as the sun shone down on the gems. Sednity saw the thing taking the shape of a zebra, snoozing in the back of the cave. He immediately put his plan into action. He made a food trail out to a clearing. He hung huge nets above, and on three sides of the clearing. He left the fourth net open so the SST could come in, and once it did, the net would go down and the SST would be trapped. It would be at his mercy and it would do whatever he wanted. Just as Sednity thought, the thing lumbered in as a rhino and was soon trapped in the net. It turned into birds, beasts, and even monsters, but the net held firm. Soon when the thing tired, Sednity stepped out of the clearing and into the trap. He was astonished to see the original form of the SST. It was a cube with two eyes and a small mouth. Flora & Fauna 178 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Sednity crept closer until he was inches from the SST. Then in a flash the SST opened its mouth so big that it created a Black Hole and it ripped time in half. The Black Hole sucked in everything in sight. All the towns, and forests, and mountains all vanished into the Black Hole. Everyone who lived in the North Pole had been forgotten because the Black Hole ripped them from history. Sednity was forgotten and many years later people came up with the word destiny, which means your future. Sednity was a man that longed to change his future. He hated his life as is, and he was acting against his future, and if he could shape shift into whatever he wanted, his future would no be able to find him. The SST grew so large that it burst and created all the holes and seas in the North Pole. Sednity would’ve been as good as dust, if I did not retell the story. This is the story of Sednity and Destiny, a man who hated his future. And you ask who I am? Well, I am the man who escaped, I am the Great Cryalt of the Shining Hut in the Land of Plain. How I escaped, well that is a different story... but this story must end here. th Nathan Do – 6 Flora & Fauna 179 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Lizard Man th Leigh Olesen– 6 Lucas was your average tenth grade student. Well, except for the fact that he was the smartest kid in New York City. Lucas was a tall, gangly redhead. He usually spiked his hair with gel. Besides just being tall, he was also strong and was on the wrestling team. Bullies stayed far away from him, as he had humiliated their leader, James. People simply shortened his name, as his whole name was Jamison Stone. He was almost as strong as Lucas, but not quite. James was humiliated a few months before, when Lucas caught him trying to give his best friend, Jared, a swirly. Lucas caught James by the arm and gave him a swirly instead. James ran down the hall screaming at the top of his lungs and crying. Everyone pointed at him and laughed, including his own goonies. James never made fun of Lucas or his friends ever again. ☯☯☯ Seven years later, when Lucas was out of high school and college, he noticed something different. He found that he had webbed hands and feet and could stick to walls. He could also shoot webs out of his hands. He texted his friends, but his friends didn’t believe him. A few hours later, he fell asleep after having eaten a lot of food. ☯☯☯ He woke up with a lizard tail and two incisors growing out of his mouth. He shouted and was surprised to hear that he could talk normally. Lucas wondered what was going on. He cooked dinner, which was drumsticks, and watched some TV. He watched TV until midnight. When his favorite shows were over, he realized he was exhausted. He fell asleep on the couch. ☯☯☯ Flora & Fauna 180 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Lucas woke up with a start and wondered why. Then he realized he was late for work at Office Corp! While he was getting dressed, which is pretty hard for someone with a tail and incisors to do, he looked in the mirror and realized he had completely turned into a lizard, except for the incisors and hands and feet(the webs and walking on walls), which were from a spider. Lucas knew he hadn’t been bitten by a radioactive spider like Spiderman, aka Peter Parker. He decided that he would quit work and figure out what had happened to him. Lucas decided he had two choices, become a hero, or become a villain. He already knew his name, Lizard Man. He thought that that sounded more like a superhero name, so he chose to be a hero. Lucas had to figure out a costume. He decided on a green vest with a hood, and a yellow shirt underneath. He was NOT going to wear tights! He decided to wear jeans and sneakers also. The new hero cut a hole into the back of his jeans, and stuck his tail through the opening. His vest was so long that his tail would be hidden until he needed it. He would always have the hood up so his face was shrouded. The only time he put it down was when he was fighting. He hoped his face would look intimidating enough to scare the attackers. ☯☯☯ Lucas swung around the city on his webs looking for anyone robbing a bank or stealing from a jewelry store or something. All of a sudden he heard a scream. He headed toward the sound. When Lucas reached his destination, he saw a man running off with a wallet in his hand. He saw a purse on the ground, unzipped, with its contents spilling out. Next to the purse he saw a woman in her mid-twenties on the ground who had apparently been shoved over and had twisted an ankle or something. She said to Lucas, “Please get my purse back from that thief!” Lucas replied, “Will do ma'am. Be right back.” Flora & Fauna 181 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 He pushed his hood down and swung on buildings until he caught up to the man. Then he jumped down from the building he was on and landed right in front of the man. The thief stopped dead in his tracks and dropped the wallet. His lips moved soundlessly. He turned around, leaving the wallet behind, and ran. Before the thief got even five feet away, Lucas whipped his tail around and knocked the thief’s legs out from under him. He shot a web straight at him so he would stay there until the cops showed up. Lucas told the man, “Now you just sit tight on my web until the cops get here, kapish?” The thief finally managed to speak. “Oh, okay.” “Good,” said Lucas, and pulled his hood back up. He ran and swung from building to building until he reached the woman again. He handed her the purse. She thanked the mysterious hero, and was more grateful than surprised at his appearance. Lucas swung toward his home. ☯☯☯ When the cops found the thief later, he was rambling something about a lizard man with incisors as teeth. The cops just thought he was crazy. But the lizard/spider man crouching on top of the lamp post knew otherwise. ☯☯☯ The next day, Lucas went searching for how he had become the hero he was. He didn’t think he had been bitten by anything. He suspected the answer was way deeper than that. Lucas figured that he had been injected with some sort of liquid that changed his DNA so he would also, as well as being a human, be a lizard and a spider. Much, much later, Lizard Man found out what had happened to him. His theory had been correct; someone had injected a liquid into his DNA which changed him. This someone was Stone, who had injected him for revenge, hoping that Lucas would be labeled a freak. Stone became a villain, conveniently named Stone. He had two rings, one for each middle finger, that he would press Flora & Fauna 182 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 together to turn into a man with stone for skin. Stone and Lizard Man had a confrontation once, which did not end well for Stone. He was thrown into jail, but while he was there the cops did not take his rings away, so he used those to break through the prison, quite literally. He freed every prisoner there. After his great escape, Stone looked for a way to exact revenge on Lizard Man. th Ella Hedman – 6 th Nathan Do – 6 James P. Jones th Ella Hedman – 6 In 1989 a man by the name of James P. Jones was working in his secret lab. He was testing animal mutations. Starting out small he took the D.N.A. from an ant and put it into a caterpillar. By 1999 he was doing very complex Flora & Fauna 183 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 experiments and he thought he was very good at mutating, but he was very wrong. October 4, 1999 James P. Jones was working on a new experiment. He took the D.N.A. from a human and put it into a bear. What came out was a bear wearing jeans and could easily stand up (unlike other bears). Another amazing thing about this bear was it could talk. James decided to name him Jeffory the bear. James and Jeffory became best friends. This was the first time James had a friendship with one of his experiments. One day James and Jeffory were watching the news when a story came on about an unidentified man robbing many banks. James said to Jeffory, "We need to catch that man robbing banks. I mean think about it, you are a bear that can act like a human, you have double the strength of a human and I am an amazing scientist." Jeffory said, "Ok, but how long will it take because my favorite show is premiering tonight. James ignored him and took off but right when he was about to leave he asked: "Are you coming?" With a sigh Jeffory walked to the door and had to squeeze out of it like usual. They took a cab and when they told him they wanted to go to the bank the taxi driver went crazy and thought they were the bank robbers. So they had to explain that they were trying to save the bank not destroy it. After that incident they concluded two things, from now on they would walk to their destinations, and secondly they were not very secret anymore because they had just told the cab driver (but in their defense they had a good reason). When they got there they saw a man in a mask. He looked very suspicious and when he turned around he looked as if he had an empty sack on his back. Flora & Fauna 184 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 "Oh no, I think we found the bank robber," Jeffory whispered. "How is that an ‘oh no’? That is why we came," exclaimed James. "Because I am missing my favorite TV series." "Oh man up Jeffory." "Why-do I have to man up if I'm a be—" Their conversation was stopped by what sounded like a rummaging through coins. They walked out of the narrow hallway to meet a masked figure red-handily grabbing coins out of a bank vault. They silently grabbed a telephone and called 911. The police came and took this masked man away. Alexandra Levee-Murray – 6 Furaloppakoppa th th Sophia Greenland – 6 Annabel Pillsbury trudged through the snow. She felt like she had been walking for hours, but it had really been only twenty minutes. Her cheeks and nose were pink from the cold. Her boots were sopping wet. She estimated Flora & Fauna 185 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 another five minutes of walking before she would reach the cave where she had made her camp two days ago. She had come to Alaska a few weeks ago to study how animals live in a cold climate. Two months ago, she had got her degree in Biology, and was chosen to help Doctor Baron von Schnorr on this assignment. Right now, all she could think about was changing into dry clothes, laying down, and going to sleep. She woke up to a howling wind. The floor was covered in snow. Annabel had always wanted to do something like this. To her, this was fun! She changed back into her clothes for the outside and headed for the entrance of the cave. She got to the entrance and saw what appeared to be an animal of some sort, but she couldn’t tell what it was. When she got closer it disappeared. What was that?, she asked herself. She walked outside and looked down. Annabel could faintly see paw prints in the snow. She began to quickly follow them, because in this snow they would disappear very fast. The paw prints led her to a small cave that was about three feet high. She got onto her hands and knees and crawled inside. She soon came to what she assumed was the middle of the cave. In the very middle of the cave was a nest with the creature in it. The creature had thick, white fur, a medium size head, black eyes and floppy ears. It had long legs that were skinny, but covered in white fur. Its tail had a small grey tip, and its chest was huge. It also had webbing in between its toes. She moved a little closer. It didn’t move. She continued to get closer until she could touch it. Then she stopped. It moved a bit closer to her. She put her hand out, and it sniffed. “It’s okay,” she whispered. The creature licked her and she began to pet it. She fell asleep next to it. In the morning, she woke up with a gasp. She crawled outside to see the sun shining. She glanced at her watch, 9:00 A.M. She had to leave. She ran back to her camp and Flora & Fauna 186 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 packed up. Annabel walked outside and waited. The creature stood beside her the entire time. When she got back to the research facility, she met with Dr. von Schnorr about her new animal friend. They both looked over at the animal, who was currently laying down in a cage. Annabel felt bad about having to cage the animal, but she couldn’t have it just wandering around. “What are we going to do with it?” she asked. “How should we classify it?” Dr. Baron von Schnorr asked. “It should go under the Kingdom, Animalia,” Annabel said. “Yes, and in Class, Mammalia,” Dr. von Schnorr said. “We could put it in the exhibit,” Dr. von Schnorr said. He had been working with the local zoo to make an exhibit of some native Alaskan animals for people to see. “Well, I think it’s from around here, but why haven’t we ever seen one before?” she said. “I don’t know, but I want to find out,” he said. “Dr. von Schnorr, I’d like to call it a Furaloppakoppa,” Annabel said. “Okay, but let’s keep it in this area,” he said. “In a cage by the landing area?” she asked. The idea didn’t sound very nice to her, but she would have to go along with it for now. She needed time to think. She stayed with the animal while it was taken to the exhibit’s landing area. Each day, a feeder came in and gave the animal food. It loved salmon berries, and since they were native to Alaska, they were easy to get. On Friday, Annabel went to see it. She saw the feeder go in. The animal growled, and attacked the feeder. It knocked the feeder to the ground and ran through the open door. It ran very fast. Faster than Annabel could believe. Once it got outside, it soon disappeared from sight. Flora & Fauna 187 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 As luck would have it, at that moment it started to snow very hard. Soon, it was impossible to see more than two feet in front of her. Annabel decided to go back to the cave where she had first found the animal. She hoped that it had gone back to a place where it felt safe. She went inside, put her snow clothes on, and started walking. When she got to the cave, she crawled inside and looked around. It was there. It looked up at her, but didn’t move. She crept forward and the furaloppakoppa let her pet it. Then, she crawled outside and went back to the research facility. Annabel and Dr. von Schnorr talked it over. They both knew that leaving this new animal in a cage at the exhibit was not the answer. It was finally decided that the animal would stay in its home. They blocked off an area just for the Furaloppakoppa so that it had room to roam. Annabel was assigned the job of studying the animal in its habitat since it had bonded with her. This made her very happy. Diana Labonville – 6 Flora & Fauna th 188 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 th Sophia Greenland – 6 th Ethan Hwang – 6 Diana Labonville – 6 Flora & Fauna th 189 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Magic Tree house of horrors Confusing title, no? This section is comprised of two potentially diabolical tasks, a magic tree that gives whatever is asked, with a potential for consequences, and the haunting quality of the most devilish maze. Ever heard the saying “money doesn’t grow on trees”? Well, what if it did? In these stories, the main character alights upon a magical piece of flora that holds a hidden secret: it gives wishes. Before asking the tree for a most coveted wish, each character must ask themselves: Does it have a down side—often using magic has a price, you can’t get something from nothing. Read on to discover whether or not there will be consequences and if they can accept them before making their wish. Where do you go? Where can you turn? Did you hit a dead end? Mazes can be tricky, deceiving, frustrating. Whether made in an English garden of box hedge and tea roses, or the looming nature of a cornfield at Halloween, there is a component to mazes that induces fear and excitement simultaneously. But what if that fear was real? In the following stories, it is, as told by some of Carden’s most Poe-esque authors. Read on, if you dare. Flora & Fauna 190 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Maze Isabelle Anderson - 7 th My heart is pounding, my blood is racing through my veins, tremors of fear tear through my body, and every pounding, torturous footstep seems to bringing me one step closer to my doom. I have been going like this for what must have been hours, though I have lost track of time. It is so dark that I cannot even see the stars anymore. The longer I am in here, the darker it gets, and the taller the thorned, finely trimmed hedges of the maze seem to grow. But, today didn’t start off like this. Not at all. In fact, it was one of the best Halloweens I have ever had. In school, all our teachers gave Halloween themed lessons and all our homework together took less than thirty minutes. After that, my friends and I got into our costumes and went to an extremely fun party. I went as a zombie hunter and my best friend went as a zombie. At the party, there was bobbing for apples, which, though I did not participate, looked very fun. There were also Halloween themed games, such as pin the fangs on the vampire, and zombie tag, and Halloween themed snacks, for example, halloweenies, which were little hot dogs, and coffin cakes, which were cupcakes. All in all, it was a great day, until I started to head home. It was nearing midnight and the streets were deserted and incredibly dark, so I could not read the street signs. I started to look in my backpack for my phone, while still walking, but, after several minutes, I realized that I must have left it at the party. I decided to head back and get my phone, but when I looked up, I realized that I had no idea where I was. I wandered around for a few more minutes, trying to find something familiar, but there were no lights and I couldn’t see anything, so it was of no use. Instead of getting even more lost, I just decided to sit on the curb and wait until it was light enough to see. I looked down at my Flora & Fauna 191 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 watch and saw that it was 11:59. I sighed and got my book from my backpack, thinking about the next six long hours I would have to spend here alone. And then, exactly at midnight, I found myself surrounded by massive hedges with black leaves and huge, glowing, purple thorns. I was very startled, and extremely scared, but the purple thorns provided just enough light for me to see by. I started to walk, hoping to find my way out of this place, but I kept hitting dead ends. I knew then that, somehow, I had been trapped in a maze. Eventually, I began to wonder what the thorns felt like, as they looked almost like they were made of soft plastic. Out of foolish curiosity, I decided to touch one of the thorns, and it was not at all soft. I barely touched it but it was razor sharp and pierced through my finger like a needle through cloth. I gave a loud cry of pain as it punctured my index finger. I stepped back and saw that I was bleeding very badly, so I tore off a small piece of my sleeve and tied it tightly around my finger to stop the blood flow. But my scream seemed to have awakened something hidden in the dark reaches of this place, and that something was angry. I heard a growl and started to run in the opposite direction. At a sharp right turn, I ran right into the hedge, but mostly only got scratches. I didn’t have time to bandage every cut, so I just kept going. I didn’t know where I was going, I just ran. Eventually, the crunching of leaves and loud growls that alerted me of the monster’s presence seemed to be getting farther away, but I didn’t stop. I slowed to almost a walk, but I knew that if I rested, I would not get up again, and that thing would catch me, and most likely finish me off. So, here I am now; wounded, terrified, and exhausted. After about a half hour, I slow down to a walk. I am pretty far away and, truthfully, I cannot run much longer. I should be nearing the end of this maze, or whatever it is. There Flora & Fauna 192 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 don’t seem to be any more dead ends. After the first few, they pretty much just stopped and now it seems like I am just going in circles. I look down at my watch and it is only 5:20. I sigh and look back up right as I trip over a hole in the ground and fall flat on my face. A sharp pain tears up my leg from my right ankle. I hurt my arm in the fall also, but I can't stop. I still have to keep going, so I walk on, incredibly slow, limping, but walking all the same. But, though it is the fastest I can go, it is not fast enough. Within twenty minutes or so, the beast has caught up with me. It is huge and hairy, with four legs and three arms, two at its sides and one protruding from the middle of its chest. It has claws like daggers, rows of teeth like a shark, and glowing green eyes that are very cat-like. I scream and start to back away. I break into a run, despite the excruciating pain piercing through my leg with every step. But the pain is too much. I fall to my knees and try to crawl forward, but I am too slow. The beast is here. The thing takes one hand and tears it across my face, cutting through my skin like butter. Something wet dripped down my face, turning the top of my shirt red. Just as I see the sun peak over the horizon, I close my eyes and prepare for death. I wait for the finishing blow, but it never comes. I open my eyes to see the monster crumble into ashes and the hedges shrivel up and die. I find myself transported to my front doorstep, still wounded. I stand up and my vision becomes blurry, dotted with little yellow spots. I make my way to the doorbell and ring it just as my vision goes black, and I collapse on the step. I hear a scream of utter horror as I slip into unconsciousness. *~*~* I awake three days later in a hospital bed. My leg is in a cast, my arm in a sling, my face is covered in stitches, and I have a throbbing headache. I look around me and see a concerned doctor and the worried faces of my family. My Flora & Fauna 193 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 mom takes my uninjured hand in hers and assures me that everything will be all right. I nod and give a small smile. I hope so. *~*~* I still don’t know what happened to that maze. Nobody found it and I didn’t want to go back and look. People don’t really believe me when I tell them what happened that night. I wouldn’t have either, at least before the whole thing. But now I don’t know what I believe. All I know for sure is that something crazy happened to me, something I never want to have to go through again. And, though I doubt I would find that maze again anyways, I know that no matter what anyone says, I won’t be going out on Halloween night again anytime soon. But even after all this, I look up at the night sky and smile, happy with the world and to be alive. th Alex Asay – 6 Flora & Fauna 194 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Woods Taylor Humphreys - 8 th One day, Leena was walking through the woods behind her house when she stumbled upon a tree. It was small and had a thin trunk, but the leaves cascaded down from the branches like a waterfall that almost touched the ground. She pushed a few of the branches away, and approached the trunk. She placed one hand on the knot that had formed on its side, and another on one of the lower branches of the tree. She closed her eyes, and breathed in the sweet aroma of cinnamon and toffee. All of a sudden, a voice said, “Hello!” Leena turned around confused and saw a beautiful woman standing in front of her. As she approached, Leena noticed that the woman’s dress wasn’t made of fabric, but was made of small pink flowers. They seemed to float around her, hugging her body in some places, and in others, falling over one another, but not touching the woman. Leena was stunned to see that the flowers were sewed together, yet they followed her where ever she went. The woman giggled, but Leena didn’t know why. She then realized that her jaw was nearly to the floor, and she quickly closed her mouth, and covered it with her hand. “Who are you?” Leena asked. “I’m Willow, you called me.” “I think I’d remember it I called you.” “But you did, when you touched the tree” she said, pointing to the trunk. “How so?” “Somewhere in your mind, you wished that you wouldn’t have just an ordinary day” Leena didn’t know what to say. How could she have called someone she didn’t know, and how could they know what she was thinking? She had so many questions that needed answers. Leena didn’t notice the woman Flora & Fauna 195 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 approaching, but as she tried to lean back on the tree, she fell back. She looked behind her and noticed it was gone. She turned back around to confront the woman about it, but in return she saw darkness. Leena stood up, and walked forward; she looked back, and noticed there was a dark red door at the end of what seemed to be a hallway. Leena ran forward and opened the door and she found herself looking at herself and the woman in the folds of the tree and its leaves. She noticed that while she was in her thoughts, the woman put her into a magical coma. In her confusion, Leena took a step back, but instead of hitting an invisible floor, she fell into oblivion. She screamed when she noticed that there was a light at the bottom of this pit she was falling in. When she hit the bottom, Leena woke up from her coma. She was too weak to do anything but open her eyes, but she noticed that the woman’s dress was now black, and made of raven’s feathers. Still too weak, Leena pretended to still be in the coma, and closed her eyes. When she reopened them, she noticed that the woman was gone. She looked around, but no sign of the woman, all she saw a big fire at the side of the room. Leena got up, now having more strength, and looked around the room. She looked back at what she was leaning on, and saw the tree, now withered with brown leaves. She began to look around the room, and saw that there was an array of knives. It was then that Leena knew what was going to happen, but it was too late. She heard the sound of a door close, and the once beautiful woman was now an ugly, old hag. She made her way to Leena who had grabbed a knife and hid it behind her back. Leena ran back to the tree, but she tripped and fell. Her had hit the knot in the tree, and the woman gasped, and held her chest. Leena didn’t realize what had happened until she turned around and saw the woman clasping her chest and coughing. Leena then stabbed the knot with the Flora & Fauna 196 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 knife she took, and the old woman died. Leena was taken back to her yard, and never returned to the woods. Larry’s Cave Nick Corral - 4 th In the town of San Jose, very few remember how it came to be that a large cave on the edge of town collapsed. For it was long ago on a misty night that Larry was walking through the woods when suddenly, a great ball of light appeared out of the mist and zoomed away as quickly as it had appeared. Larry began to follow it, and, as he chased it into the mist, he tripped on the root of a giant oak tree. He looked up to see that oak tree glowing. He checked where he was on the map he always kept in his pocket, then he went home. Waking up early the next day, he put on some shorts and a t-shirt and went to the library. He went to the nature section and began to read up on oak trees. After spending thirty minutes reading about oak trees, he found that there was a special oak tree that granted a wish to one person every hundred years. Larry suddenly being seized by greed went into the forest and after searching about for some time came across the great tree. When he arrived, the tree bellowed, “Why have you come here?” “To ask you to grant me a wish,” Larry replied. “What do you desire?” “Lots of money,” Larry said. The tree asked if he was sure this is what he wanted. Larry insisted upon it. After the tree gave him the money, Larry went into a small cave in the heart of the forest and hid his money. The Flora & Fauna 197 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 cave was supported by a few rock formations. The walls were smooth and empty. Then he decided to live there. Larry lived there for a while, going into town only to buy what he desired. He lived happily until one day a young boy by the name of Jack stumbled across the cave and found Larry asleep. Jack, being very poor, tried to steal some money, but in the process, woke Larry. In a vicious fit of rage, Larry attacked Jack, causing the cave to collapse in on both of them. And that is how the cave remains to this day. Happy Halloween Charlie Trippel - 7 th Let me tell you about the day I went to the pumpkin patch and decided to never go back to one ever again. It was actually the night, to be specific. I was fourteen, had good grades, a good life. My parents were always happy and forgiving. By the way I never really liked Halloween anyways. So why have an experience that gives me nightmares six years later? I guess it all started with a dare. “Kyle are you coming with us to the pumpkin patch after it closes tonight?” my friend Amanda asked me. We were in the cafeteria at school. Sitting next to Amanda was her brother Kevin. It was October 31, or Halloween. Kevin was looking at me, waiting for an answer. “Yeah, you bet,” I said. “Ok,” Kevin said, “Tonight our main objective is to go into the maze and find Joseph. (Joseph was a senior in our high school). Yesterday he texted me saying that he was going into the maze after it closed. He told me what he was wearing and that he brought a ton of ring pops if he gets a candy craving. He also told me that if he wasn’t back at school the next day, he was probably stuck in the maze Flora & Fauna 198 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 trying to find a way out and to come and try to find him. He is obviously stuck in the maze or else we wouldn’t be having this conversation. So, that being said, are you guys positive that you still want to go to the maze?” “Of course,” I said. “Dude, I’m your sister. Why would I not go?” said Amanda. “Alright, then it’s settled. See you after school Kyle,” he said, standing up and stretching. “See you later dude,” I said and walked away. “Bye Kyle,” Amanda said, blushing and running away. After lunch we had a very tiring PE class full of pushups, planks, stretches, and finally dodgeball. When that was finished, Kevin pulled me over and said, “Dude she totally likes you.” “Who?” I said. “Duh. My sister.” “………. And?” “And she told me not to tell you.” “Bingo,” I said pointing at him. “Well?” he asked with his hands raised. “Well what?” “Well do you like her?” “Not really. Maybe. A little. Kinda. Yeah, so? “Hahaha ok see you at the pumpkin patch,” he said while walking away. “Ok bye.” After PE, everyone went home. When I got home my mom was making dinner. As I walked in, one smell was distinct. Bacon. “Hi Kyle. How was your day?” she asked me. “Revealing. What about you?” “My day was kind of stressful. People were getting fired left and right. Pretty soon I’ll be working at Seven Eleven or something.” Ten minutes later, my dad came in and we ate dinner, which consisted of waffles and bacon. We were a little low Flora & Fauna 199 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 on the groceries. After dinner I said goodnight and went upstairs. I turned out the light and waited until ten minutes after my parents had gone to sleep. Then, I got out of bed, put on a hoodie and a pair of converse sneakers. I opened my window and got out onto the roof. I jumped and landed on the ground. Since the pumpkin patch was four and a half blocks away, I just sprinted through the trick or treaters and entered the pumpkin patch where Joseph. I saw Amanda and Kevin waiting at the maze for me. I said hi and Kevin laid oud the details. “Ok guys, I’ve thought this through and we should probably split up. Amanda and Kyle you go to the left, I’ll take the right,” he said and looked at me and grinned for the last part. “I hate you Kevin,” I said jokingly. “Sounds like a personal problem,” he replied. “Ok let’s go find Joseph.” Amanda was blushing so much that I thought her face was going to explode. This maze was weird. Usually mazes are made from corn stalks, but this one had thick, dense hedges. We split up and the farther we went into the maze, the colder it got. Amanda and I were walking and talking about stuff like our old middle school teachers and how awesome high school is compared to back then. We both stopped talking when up ahead we saw a dark ominous figure carrying something long. It appeared to be limping and so far it didn’t see us. When it passed, Amanda asked me in a very quiet voice, “Kyle do you have any idea what that was?” “I have no idea.” “It could have been some sort of security guard,” she suggested. “Batons aren’t that long, Amanda,” I replied. Just then, I heard footsteps that sounded like limping. I covered Amanda’s mouth and sat down next to one of the hedges. Another one walked by and it was so close that I Flora & Fauna 200 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 could have reached out and touched it. That was when I realized that it wasn’t a security guard. I didn’t really know what it was. The creature wore a straw hat and other than that it was just wearing rags. Its skin radiated darkness. The baton wasn’t a baton either. It was a scythe. The creature was just dragging it on the ground as it went. When it passed, I waited until five minutes had gone by until I started breathing normally again. I looked to my left and I saw something that looked like a diamond. I looked closer and saw that it was attached to something. It was a ring pop. I gulped and dared to look further. Connected to the ring pop was a finger, connected to a hand, connected to a forearm, connected by an elbow to a shoulder and then nothing. It was an arm. Joseph wasn’t lost. He was dead. “Amanda, I don’t think we’re going to find Joseph,” I said pointing to the disembodied arm. She looked where I was pointing and almost passed out. She regained her strength and we agreed to go find Kevin and get out of there. We got up from behind the bush and started walking. “KYLE!” I heard Kevin shout. “WHAT?!” “IF MY SISTER DIES, I’LL KILL YOU!” “OK, SOUNDS FAIR!” We reached a place where the maze forked into three other paths. I was halfway through eenie-meenie-miney-mo when we heard a scream. A scream that was shortly cut off, Kevin. Amanda froze. She broke down and started sobbing. After about twelve minutes of sitting next to her crying, she stopped. “Look,” I said. “I’m really sorry this is happening. You’re probably not going to want to hear this, but we are going to either get out of here, or die trying.” “Kyle. Sniff. I think that was a given from the moment we found Joseph’s arm,” Amanda replied. Flora & Fauna 201 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 I helped her up and half-guided, half-carried Amanda back the way we came. I felt like we were getting close to the entrance when something grabbed Amanda by the back of her shirt, picked her up, and threw her down very hard. I could tell that the wind had been knocked out of her. One of those things got her. It was bringing the blade up for the kill blow. I didn’t even think, or really have control over my body. One second I was panicking, the next I was leaping right at the creature. I slammed right into it, making it lose its grasp on the scythe. The weapon fell and I thought that that was it for Amanda, but she rolled out of the way at the last second. All that happened was a small gash on her forearm. As the creature was getting back up, I sprinted over towards it and grabbed the scythe. I held it up and brought the wooden pole part down hard on my knee. It snapped in half with a gratifying crack. “OH, GOD THAT WAS PAINFUL!” I looked back at the creature. It stood up and looked up at the sky. It turned into some sort of dark gas that swirled around and it went up and up into the air. We noticed about four others making their way to the sky. We looked at each other, shrugged, and found our way out. When we got to the entrance, something jumped out of the bushes. th “Ta-da!” it said. Clarys Paragas –7 “Kevin?” I asked. “Uh, what? Why are you both staring at me?” Amanda went up and slapped him. “I THOUGHT YOU GOT KILLED!” “What? Ooooohhhh. Hahaha yeah. Was it because of my scream?” “Yes” I answered. Flora & Fauna 202 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “I was wondering what your reaction would be. Wait, why would you think that I would be killed?” “Did you not see those things back there?” Amanda asked. “You know the ones with the scythes?” Kevin became serous now. “There were monsters in that maze?” “Yes, with scythes and a slice and dice attitude.” Amanda showed him her arm. “Oh my god. Guys I’m so sorry,” he said. “Guys, let’s just go home,” I suggested. “Wait, what about Joseph,” Kevin asked. “He’s dead.” “Haha, very funny.” “No,” Amanda said. “He actually is dead.” I could see the realization coming to him. “Oh. Well then.” The Giving Tree Yiyun Wei - 6 th "Abby! Come back here right this instant! Abby! Abby!" my mom shouted. Her words were nothing to me when I ran out the house, tears streaming down my cheeks as I ran into the dark forest. I wanted to turn back, but I couldn't, not after how my own dear parents treated me: yelling at me for doing something I didn't know I wasn't allowed to do, such as reading during dinner. Possibly the most cruel thing they could have done was screaming when I got a 99 out of 100. I ran further and further into the Dark Forest, my second home, the only place where I would be happy for eternity. There were trees of all sorts, prickly bushes, and wildflowers that I didn't know existed, and from time to time, some shadow of a strange creature. Finally, I reached a banyan tree which I called "Longleafshanks". Flora & Fauna 203 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Longleafshanks was about as old as the dinosaurs, at least that was what I thought. Its bark smelled like paper and was very bumpy, soft, and smooth. This tree was very different from the other trees around me because it was older, bigger, and was a good shelter and playhouse. It was very comfortable to lean on and people could climb it easily, for there were a lot of branches and roots. I curled up in one of its roots and cried myself to sleep, with a sense of the stars lurking up there between branches and leaves. I woke up at dawn and sat up, looking at my surroundings. It took a while for me to comprehend why I ended up there. I got up and started looking around. I had never really paid attention to what there was past Longleafshanks, and wanted to explore a little, now that my parents weren't watching me twenty-four seven. I slowly crept out of the tree. Not a thing was stirring. Then, silently as I could, I ventured deeper into the forest. At first, the surroundings were the same as they were before, but suddenly, everything seemed bigger and darker, even though there was a lot of light shining in from the trees. I pushed back tree branches with my hands going deeper and further into the forest. When I took just one step behind a large dead tree, I became interested in a very large, strange mushroom. It was a very dark violet, approximately six feet tall and two feet wide, adorned with large white and pink circles. The stem was black, and every ten seconds, a bubble would grow on it until it was the size of a basketball, then pop, sprinkling purple glitter all over the place. Before I could get within five feet of the mushroom, I was already covered with glitter. Once I did get close to the mushroom, it stopped spraying me with glitter and its sporophore turned to face me. Fog started descending on us rapidly. I looked around but the only thing visible was the violet mushroom, which looked like it was getting bigger. After a few awkward moments of silence, it spoke in a misty sort of voice: Flora & Fauna 204 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 "A wish for one, a wish for three, Everything is up to me. So announce your wish, Like your favorite dish, And I will make it come true, For you!" It "stared" at me expectantly. I reviewed its poem in my head, then realized that I could make a wish. "Uh..I, uh…wish that…uh…I could have…uh…infinite wishes?" It was extremely awkward talking to a mushroom. Immediately, it replied, "Of course!" There was a flash that almost made me blind. I staggered a little, and I reached for the dead tree for support. Surprisingly, I only felt air. I looked at the mushroom, now more purple than ever. There was an awkward silence, then I knew that I actually had infinite wishes because of the way the mushroom was patiently waiting. I paused for a moment to think about something big that was currently upsetting me. Then, I had it. "Mushroom? Can you hear me?" "Yes…just as clear as if you were right next to me…" it replied in its usual misty voice. "I wish…" "Go on…" "I wish that my parents would treat me normally--" The same blinding flash appeared before I could finish my sentence. Then the fog lifted in a blinding whirlwind which caused me to shield my eyes with my arms. Once the fog cleared as quickly as it had come, the mushroom vanished, leaving a circle of purple glitter where it used to be. I sat down for a while, running my fingers through the soft glitter, thinking about all the impossible things I could wish about, if only the mushroom was there. I lifted up my head to look at the sky, hitting the back of it against the Flora & Fauna 205 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 dead tree. As I rubbed my head, I noticed that everything was back in its place. "Abby! Oh, John, I think we've lost her in the Dark Forest! Abby! Abby!" my mother's voice echoed through the whole forest. I stood up sharply, bonking my head against the dead tree again, then ran to my mom's voice while rubbing my head. I skipped to a halt on the soft dirt in front of my house. My mother and father were both standing in the house, but the door was open. As soon I came into sight, my mother ran down the steps and embraced me in a bone-breaking hug. "Oh Abby, we're so sorry for how we treated you! Here (sob) come in (sob) for some(sob) lunch…" As I sat down at my dinner table, I noticed that there were a lot more things on the table than usual. There were now cushions instead of a tablecloth, a milk bottle at the place where I usually sat, plastic covers over anything that has edges or a falling hazard, and no toys. The food was what that surprised me the most. There were platters and platters of different types of food babies should be eating, a whole dish of vegetables and fruits, and three tiny blue-bordered square plates (one for me, one for my mom, and one for my dad), each one containing a single, plump, red, chocolate covered strawberry. The baby food consisted of mashed carrots, chopped green apples, apple sauce, and some tofu soup. There were also oranges, mangoes, some grape vines, mashed squash, and some pumpkin soup. After a long time of eating this vegetarian, single textured, mystery meal, I requested to go on a walk. My tongue was still burning from all the vegetables I ate when I asked to go. My parents agreed, but my dad gave me a backpack full of granola bars, apples, a snake charmer, a rattle ("Just in case you get bored!"), two packs of crayons, Flora & Fauna 206 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 and a bottle full of milk. I sighed and carried the heavy burden with me into the forest. When I was out of sight, I dropped the backpack and ran to the spot where I last saw the violet mushroom. Sure enough, there it was, standing patiently, as if it was waiting for me. The fog descended again, and it looked at me so that I could see its spores. This time, however, there was a mouth and two eyes on the cap. It smiled and said something that made me furious. "Define normal…" Chloe Sherry - 4 Flora & Fauna th 207 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Cave of Wonders The stories in Arabian Nights center around the basic themes of all fairy tales, justice and consequence. No story has a greater understanding of these two concepts than Ali Baba and the 40 Thieves. In this tale, Ali Baba is faced with a cave full of treasures, and only takes what he needs; his modest action in this cave is rewarded by Fate in his trusty maid Morgiana. After she saves his life, being the smarter of the two, he chooses to reward her kindness and cunning with a husband (his son). The stories beyond tell of a different ending, one in which the clever Morgiana is instead given a trip to the now master-less cave, where she is allowed to pick from a variety of animal totems. The art here is twofold. Those related to the tale of Morgiana and her animal fate are inspired by the stylistic elements of Klimt, playing on Art Deco lines and vibrant colors. While the others are charcoal drawings of animals, and experiment with shade and shapes. Flora & Fauna 208 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Morgiana’s Amazing Adventure Zachary Ostenberg - 5 th Morgiana had killed the Captain of the Thieves and so Ali Baba took her to the cave of wonders. It had many animals and gold and gems. Morgiana got to choose one of the animals. There were camels and scarabs and jerboas (oh my!), but the animal that most appealed to her was a large snake called a cobra. It was a very long snake and was very gentle with her. She liked the feel of its scales on her skin. She chose the cobra, and then Morgiana and her husband went off and moved to a kiosk in the Indies. Many snake tamers tried to buy the snake from her for thousands of sequins, but she refused them. She loved her snake and she did not want to sell it. Morgiana and the snake performed shows and made many sequins. One day, Morgiana’s husband came in and said she was needed at the residence of Ali Baba. She, of course, went right away to see what the matter was. When she got there, Ali Baba told her that 40 thieves had captured his great grandmother. He did not know why they had captured her. Ali Baba proposed that the scoundrels might be looking to ransom the old woman. He was willing to pay, but instead of paying a lot of money for the return of his great grandmother, he sent Morgiana on a super spy Ninja operation! Her partner in this mission would be her husband, to whom she was betrothed after she defeated the 40 thieves. They would have to act fast or his great grandmother would be killed! Morgiana and her husband set off at dawn for Baghdad. That was where Ali Baba’s great grandmother was taken when she was captured and where they hoped to find the 40 thieves and their secret lair. They saw many things in Baghdad, but none of them seemed suspicious until they stumbled upon an abandoned warehouse that seemed almost too quiet. They poked their heads inside the Flora & Fauna 209 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 warehouse and saw nothing except a few boxes in one corner which they found very suspicious. They moved the boxes out of the way, and then they saw a very small hole in the floor. This was where Morgiana’s snake came in handy. Morgiana sent her snake into the hole to check things out. Suddenly, as the snake’s body entered the hole, something inside the hole was triggered and it gaped open. Both Morgiana and her husband were able to jump inside. Once inside, they saw that they were in a very spacious cavern where they found a guard waiting at the entrance! Morgiana’s husband quickly overtook the guard with his awesome karate skills. Then, Morgiana quickly wrapped her snake tightly around the guard until he fell unconscious. Morgiana and her husband continued on through the cavern until they found a pit of snakes in their path. They could not go further into the cavern without getting past the snakes. Then her husband said, “Why does it always have to be snakes? I hate snakes!” Morgiana ran stealthily on the side of the wall to get to the other side without having to encounter the snakes. Her husband was terrified and could not move. “Come, Husband! We must save your great great grandmother!” shouted Morgiana. Morgiana’s husband remained on the other side of the snake pit in a fetal position. Eventually, he gathered up enough courage to stand. After that, he courageously and heroically… stopped sucking his thumb. Next, he found the courage to use his amazing ninja moves on the snakes. With the snakes now all unconscious, he could safely cross to the other side and he and Morgiana could go deeper into the Cobra’s Labyrinth (as it turned out to be called). The next room they came across was a room full of pyrite. They thought it was gold, so they took some, but the pyrite was a booby trap and the walls started closing in Flora & Fauna 210 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 on them. Arrows were shot at them, and the doors were closed. The snake came in handy again when it used its tail to break down the door. Then, they quickly escaped. Morgiana and her husband went through many more rooms filled with many more fake riches, but they had learned not to touch these treasures. They eventually came to the room where Ali Baba’s great grandmother was being held. She was housed in a cage in a dim corner of a large room. The room was adorned with many animal skulls from the animals the thieves had hunted. Morgiana and her husband quickly rushed over to the cage, but were suddenly confronted by another 39 thieves. They thought they were surely doomed, but they did not lose hope. They fought with all of their hearts, yet they were still overtaken and put in cages of their own. Morgiana’s snake started shedding his skin and getting bigger –and bigger –and bigger until it was 20 feet long. It whipped the thieves with its tail and they were knocked against the walls. All 39 thieves were knocked unconscious and the snake tied them up with the skin he had shed, which was actually quite strong. Afterwards, the snake bit off the bars of the cages that held Morgiana, her husband, and Ali Baba’s great grandmother. This truly was a wondrous snake. Next, they had to figure a way out of the vast underground lair. Since it was a labyrinth, it would be too difficult to simply retrace their steps out the way they had come. Morgiana and her husband had an idea for their escape. Along with Ali Baba’s great grandmother, they jumped on the snake’s back and rode it up to the surface of the labyrinth. The magical snake, still enlarged, was able to burrow straight upwards until he emerged in the Tigris River with Morgiana, her husband, and Ali Baba’s great grandmother. The snake popped his head up and they saw the shoreline nearby. They were in shallow waters and were Flora & Fauna 211 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 easily able to make their way to shore. The water from the hole the snake had made flooded the labyrinth, sealing the fate of the 40 thieves trapped inside. Ali Baba’s great grandmother was safely returned to Ali Baba. Morgiana and her husband were thanked and given many sequins. Morgiana, her husband, and the magical snake lived happily ever after. Theo Sprouse - 5 th The Mechanical Pheonix Quinn Martin - 5 th While sipping tea in his beautiful stone house on a cloudless day, Ali Baba, a wealthy woodcutter, decided to reward his beautiful slave, Morgiana, with a trip to the Cave of Wonders. Morgiana had recently saved Ali Baba and his son from certain death by the captain of a band of Flora & Fauna 212 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 robbers. Ali Baba covered her eyes with a piece of cloth so Morgiana would not be tempted to return to the cave, and led her to the Cave of Wonders. When they reached the cave, Ali Baba quietly said, “Open Sesame!” The hidden doors to the cave opened, and Ali Baba and Morgiana entered. Ali Baba led Morgiana to a wall in the cave and commanded, “Open Barley!” A hidden door opened and a hallway appeared. Ali Baba led her through the hallway and uncovered her eyes. Amazed, Morgiana gazed around the room. The whole room was filled from floor to ceiling with animals. Some were real animals that had magical abilities and others were jewel encrusted scarab beetles, dragons, and thousands of other idols. Something especially shiny caught Morgiana’s eye. Morgiana turned her head to see a small metal ball glittering in the corner of the cave. The ball appeared to be made of gold, silver, copper, and steel. She slowly picked it up and held it in her hands. Seeing two diamonds encrusted on the top of the ball, she pressed them, one at a time. The ball creaked and shook in her hands. Frightened, Morgiana quickly set the ball down and backed away. The ball shook once more and suddenly transformed into a huge phoenix. The phoenix quickly adjusted and turned its beak towards its back to look at Morgiana and Ali Baba, as if to say they should climb on its back. Morgiana and Ali Baba climbed onto the phoenix. The phoenix suddenly pushed off and flew out of the crumbling cave –just in time. The phoenix flew directly over the cave and spread its wings, as if to shelter something. Immediately, the crumbling of the cave ceased. The phoenix landed near the Flora & Fauna 213 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 mouth of the cave and the cave hardened into one solid piece once more. Morgiana did not know what stopped the crumbling but she believed that it was the phoenix. Ali Baba and Morgiana stood at the cave entrance. Before they could look back at the phoenix, it had turned back into a small metal ball again. Morgiana picked up the metal ball and she and Ali Baba cautiously re-entered the cave. While they expected everything inside the cave to be crushed, everything was in its place. The main cave doors were already opened, so Ali Baba whispered, “Open Barley!” to the wall in the cave. The hidden door opened and the hallway appeared once more. Ali Baba and Morgiana re-entered the animal room, and found that all the animals were just as they had left them. Ali Baba gave Morgiana a small bag of gold coins for her bravery and they left the cave. Morgiana would not let go of the ball that was once the magical phoenix. Morgiana thanked Ali Baba for the gold coins and for the magical phoenix. Ali Baba told Morgiana she had served him and his family well and that she was now free to live on her own, no longer a slave. She felt elated as she walked slowly to her horse, still thinking about what had happened. The next day Morgiana packed up her horse with the few belongings she owned, the metal ball and the bag of gold coins. She rode to a large town, not too far into the desert. She used some of her money to buy a small, humble house and some necessities. Some days she worked happily as a servant for the Caliph. Other days she cooked and baked for the poor. One day when she had no work, she felt brave enough to release the phoenix from its ball. She walked many miles into the desert so no one would see. When she reached a part of the desert where no one lived, she pressed the two diamond buttons on the metal ball. The ball creaked and shook –and once again transformed into the giant phoenix. Once released, the phoenix soared up higher and higher in the air. Flora & Fauna 214 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 As if for fun, the phoenix did a few loops and soared back down towards Morgiana. It landed near her feet and instantly turned back into the ball. She carefully picked up the ball, placed it in her pocket and rode her horse back home to sleep. That night she heard that a group of robbers were terrorizing the town where Ali Baba lived. She decided to ride her horse to Ali Baba’s town, with her magical phoenix. When she reached the town, she found only a few people still living there. All the others had been scared away. She rode to Ali Baba’s house and quickly tied her horse to a fence in the garden behind it. She found Ali Baba resting on cushions, frightened and shaking. She whispered to him, “What is happening? Who is the leader of the robbers?” Ali Baba replied, “I think the leader of the group might be the robber captain’s son who previously attacked me and my son.” Morgiana went outside and found a large boulder near the road that she could hide behind. She waited patiently behind the boulder until finally, the group of robbers rode into the town. When the robber captain dismounted, Morgiana leaped out from her hiding spot. The robber captain saw her at once and exclaimed, “Do you think you are going to stop me?!” He laughed a wicked laugh. As the robber captain laughed, Morgiana pressed the two diamond buttons on the ball and it transformed into the phoenix. When the phoenix flew at the robber captain, it caught him by surprise, not leaving him enough time to draw his scimitar. The captain jumped back on his horse and fled. As the frightened robbers hastily rode away, the phoenix began shooting fire out of its mouth, chasing them into the desert. When the phoenix returned to Morgiana, it instantly turned back into a ball at Morgiana’s feet. Morgiana gently retrieved the ball and returned to Ali Baba’s house to let Flora & Fauna 215 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 him know he was safe. The next day, Ali Baba and his friends threw a party for Morgiana to celebrate that she and the phoenix had saved the town. Ali Baba gave Morgiana another bag of gold to thank her. That evening, Morgiana rode back to her small house and lived peacefully under the protection of her phoenix. Morgiana lived forever, by drinking a drop of phoenix tears a day. It’s a little known fact, but about two thousand years later (give or take), the phoenix took a job in the Harry Potter movies, as Dumbledore’s phoenix. Jessica Mori - 5 Flora & Fauna th 216 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Ashug Gurijala - 5 Jessica Mori - 5 Emily Fry - 5 Flora & Fauna th th th 217 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Serpents of the Cave Iris Schille - 5 th After Morgiana had saved his and his son’s life, Ali Baba decided to reward her in the best way possible: a trip to the cave of wonders. Ali Baba had found a ticket to the cave of wonders in the robber’s cave when he was gathering the gold inside it. He had never used it, but was saving it. Now, as he gave it to Morgiana, he wished her good luck and helped her up onto the large ship he had hired to bring her there. The cave of wonders was a colossal underwater cavern filled with, as legend said, gold and gems so plentiful that you could spend one million coins every day of your life and never run out. Morgiana waved goodbye as she set out on the multi-day journey to the cave of wonders. “Land ho!” shouted the captain. And sure enough, a large hump of rock rose just above the water, the entrance to the cave barely visible. “This is your stop, Morgiana,” he said. He lent her a small rowboat and some supplies, and sent her on her way. “We’ll pick you up in 15 days.” The captain shouted after her. Morgiana docked her boat on top of the cave, which resembled a stony island, took a deep breath, and dived. She saw the dark hole in the side of the cave, and swam into it. She squeezed into the narrow hole and found herself at the bottom of a silvery pool of seawater. There was a slot in the rock wall next to her that said “Insert Ticket”. She put her ticket in the slot and the ticket vanished. She stepped lightly from the silvery water in the pool and wished she were dry, because she was starting to get quite cold. As soon as she wished that, she was instantly dry. “Wow!” She exclaimed. “This cave is amazing!” Flora & Fauna 218 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 She started to explore. There was gold everywhere, as well as gems, silks, and even a flying carpet. The curious thing was that all the gold was stamped with the symbol of a cobra. She found a beautiful steel dagger engraved with a hissing cobra. She tried to pick it up, but it was stuck to the bottom of the cave! She twisted it around, and it turned. She kept turning it around and around until the dagger popped free, stuck to a splinter of rock and leaving a hole in the floor of the cave. The floor around it crumbled until it left a hole big enough for someone ten times the size of Morgiana to fit through. Water started forming in a puddle around it, and the puddle turned into a large pool, which turned into a flood of water that was slowly filling up the cave. Morgiana, who was gathering riches, turned when she heard the sound of water. “Uh oh!” she said. The water was up to Morgiana’s waist. Luckily, a huge spine of rock jutted up from the floor of the cave. She sloshed noisily up to the rock, and quickly climbed to the top, where she found safety. The water flooded the cave at a level well over her head. And it kept on rising. The worst was yet to come. After one more minute of rising, it suddenly stopped. Then, a slithering sound was heard coming from the waterlogged hole. There were bubbles in the water, and the head of a monstrous cobra, its glowing, green, pupil-less eyes filled with anger and hate, rose up through the hole in the floor. It pulled itself through, and looked back down the hole, where another cobra, smaller, but its yellow eyes filled with equal malice, was in the process of heaving itself through the hole. It came out; they flared their enormous hoods, and rose up side-by-side, swaying and hissing, and then they found the petrified Morgiana, both pairs of eyes fixed on her. Morgiana fainted. * * * Flora & Fauna 219 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Morgiana woke up on a hard, smooth object. She sat up and saw it was a scale. She realized she was on one of the cobras. She stood up and tried to get off, but the cobra holding her started moving in a way so Morgiana couldn’t get off. It brought her to another spot on the rock, and made a weird hissing sound. Suddenly, there was a grating noise, and half of the rock fell away onto the floor of the cave. Then, a huge statue of a silver cobra, a gold infinity sign emblazoned on its back and its pupil-less eyes made of emerald, rose out from the floor of the cave and kept growing higher, until it almost reached the ceiling. The cobra put Morgiana down next to the statue and lifted itself up after her. The other cobra did the same. Then, it spoke. “Welcome to the cave of wonders, Morgiana. My name is Hakim, and her name is Salenea. Please understand that we don’t mean harm. We are just lonely and want someone to keep us company.” Morgiana was a pushover for animals. She thought about it, and then replied, “Ok.” They took her to a hole in the rock she hadn’t noticed, and told her to go inside. They slithered in after her, and then they came to a cave inside the rock, where the base of the silver snake statue could be seen, covered in strange images and carvings. Hakim and Salenea slithered in with Morgiana, and said, “This won’t hurt. It is simply a spell that will let you live forever.” Then, they started hissing in a way that made Morgiana shiver. Their eyes blazed, as they seemed to read the inscriptions carved into the silver. Morgiana felt something change in her eyes. She looked at her reflection on the smooth silver, and saw, instead of her eyes, snake eyes. No, She thought. That isn’t possible. And so she thought she had just imagined it. * * * Flora & Fauna 220 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Every night, at moonrise, the cobras would take her to the cave and hiss the same spell. And every time Morgiana would look at her reflection in the statue and think she had scales, or snake hair, or a snake body, but she always dismissed the thought and told herself she was imagining it. But after thirteen nights, the cobras didn’t hiss the spell. Instead, they circled her and whispered, “Are you ready?” Morgiana spoke involuntarily. “Yes.” The cobras circled her, hissing a new spell. Suddenly, Morgiana felt herself changing, though she couldn’t see anything happening to her, because she couldn’t move her head. She felt her arms getting long and flat; they eventually disappeared into her lengthening body. Her nose and mouth had morphed together into some kind of snout, and her hair had retracted into her skull. Her eyes changed to blue snake eyes, and hard, pointy black scales burst through her skin. Then, she stopped transforming, and could move again. Just before she turned entirely into a snake, she asked, “Why are you doing this?” Salenea answered, “Because we want to.” Morgiana looked up at the towering figures of Hakim and Salenea and tried to scream, “You’re evil!” But only succeded in letting out a pitiful little hiss. Salenea giggled and Hakim laughed. Enraged, Morgiana the snake slithered away, out of the cave inside the rock and into the main cave, where she curled up around a pile of black gems, trying to blend in and hide. She fell asleep to the lapping of water inside the cave. Morgiana woke up to a furry paw poking her in the side. She hissed and rolled into an even tighter ball. The paw poked harder, and finally resorted to scratching her before she woke up. The paw’s owner turned out to be a little red cat. Morgiana uncoiled and asked, “What do you want?” The little red cat replied, “Hello, I saw your ordeal with the cobras. They are really evil. I used to preside over this Flora & Fauna 221 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 cave, and gave riches to any who came. Then the cobras drove me out, and took control. They used their magic to make everything cobra-themed. I came back and managed to trick them into going into a hole in the floor of the cave, and sealed the hole with a stone stopper, but unfortunately, I left some sealant on the stopper, and a dagger got stuck on it. And then you came along and released them, so I need your help to defeat them once and for all and release you from that spell.” Morgiana apologized to the red cat for releasing the cobras, and agreed to help him get rid of the evil snakes. They made a plan in secret and decided to put it into effect the next day. The next day, The Little Red Cat and Morgiana the Snake slathered their bodies in superglue, and rolled around in the piles of coins. Every inch of their bodies were covered in gold and gems. Then, they took another superglue bath, and rolled around again in gold. They did that again and again until they had used up all the riches in the cave, and were huge, walking mounds of gems and coins. Next, they went to the place where the cobras were talking. They loomed over the huge cobras in their hard, brassy suits and spoke in deep voices, “We are your consciences, come to haunt you for all the terrible things you did. Prepare to die.” The frightened cobras slithered away as fast as they could from the cave, and never came back. As soon as they were gone, Morgiana turned back into her old self, and shed the suit of gold. “Goodbye!” she called to the Little Red Cat, and got into her rowboat, and waited until the ship came to pick her up. She was all the way back home when she realized she had forgotten to gather riches. But she was interested in Ali Baba’s son, so she asked for his hand in marriage instead, and they all lived happily ever after. Flora & Fauna 222 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Squeak’s Tail Thuytien Nguyen - 5 th Ali Baba was in his home, offering Morgiana a reward for her cleverness and for saving him and his son from the evil robber captain. He said he would reward her with a trip to the cave of wonders. Upon entering the cave, he said she could have anything she liked. Morgiana was taken with an animal that resided in the cave. She picked the jerboa. The jerboa had little ears like a rabbit so it could hear farther, a long tail like a rat to find its way around, and short long legs like a kangaroo to jump very high. Its light brown fur was smooth at normal temperature, but rough when wet. This jerboa was a real flesh and blood animal, but it was no ordinary creature. It had many special powers such as jumping eight feet high, talking to humans, seeing very far in the morning and at night, and surviving without needing to eat for up to four days. It liked to eat cactuses, plants, and little insects. If it touches water or wetness, it would make it a vulnerable to sickness. Morgiana picked the jerboa and named it Squeak. She picked Squeak because it knew where Morgiana’s dad was. Squeak overheard a conversation between two soldiers who were retrieving treasure for the captain’s son a couple months ago. Squeak heard that her father had been captured and placed in a mysterious place by that evil Captain’s son. Her father was put in a dungeon far away. She had to think fast to save her dad. At first, Squeak kept biting Morgiana because it was hungry, but then Squeak spoke to her. Squeak said in a hoarse voice, “Feed me with plants before I die!” She quickly gave Squeak some plants, and it sat there chewing the food happily. Morgiana asked Squeak how it got into the cave. Flora & Fauna 223 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Squeak said, “The rainy season flooded my home and washed me into this cave where it is dry and feels just like my old home. Then you chose me as your animal because I could help you find your dad,” said Squeak. Squeak went down into a hole that it made after eating. It got out a map from the hole and pointed with its tail at the spot where her father was kidnapped. It pointed at a forest that was surrounded by a desert. “There are lots of skulls and a big swamp around the whole castle! You know that I cannot go into water, right?” said Squeak in a scared voice. “Then we need to find another way to get into the castle,” said Morgiana thinking out loud. Squeak made a plan to rescue Morgiana’s dad. They would free him from the dungeon and put a dummy in his place. To make a dummy of her dad, first, she told Squeak to get some cactus spikes and cotton. Squeak jumped away as fast as it could to get the items. When it came back with the items, it helped Morgiana stuff the cotton into a sack and use the spikes as hair. The next day they had a plan to break into the castle, but they still did not know how to get to the castle. The path to the castle was through a very dry desert. They packed up the dummy in a bag and went on their way. Squeak started to lead the way to the castle. Then Squeak jumped back to Morgiana and started to bite her. Morgiana gave it some more plants to munch on. Slowly the castle began to be revealed in the distance. It was built with big stones and lots of guards at every corner. Then Morgiana put the fake dummy near a tree and Flora & Fauna 224 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 pretended that it was her dad. Squeak went to see what was going on in the inside and came out with an important message. It said that the son of the evil captain wanted to get married. Morgiana smiled. She had the perfect plan in mind. She went to the river nearby and splattered dirt all over her face and ripped her clothes in the thorns. She looked like a poor homeless person. “You smell very bad!” cried Squeak. “Shhhhh…. this is my plan,” Morgiana said. “Huh? Well, this sure seems like a smelly plan!” Squeak said. “Just go with it Squeak,” whispered Morgiana. “Fine, fine,” said the little jerboa. Morgiana went to the castle door, dragging herself as if she was badly hurt. She knocked weakly and told the guards to tell the captain’s son that a sorceress was here to tell the son about his future marriage and life. The guards quickly ran in and told the captain’s son the great news. “It’s my lucky day! Guards, bring her in and treat her with all due respect or else your head will be released from the body in a long dreadful process! Now go!” cried the excited son. As Morgiana came in, Squeak jumped off her shoulder and scurried off to find the dungeon. Morgiana and the son talked awhile and soon she told him about his marriage. “Your marriage will be a great disaster if you don’t burn down this castle,” said Morgiana. “Wh-wh-wh-when does this have to be completed b-bb-bbbyyy??” cried the frightened son. “When the tide is low, in about three days, the moon and sun will overlap and the clouds will cover all directions except for the light of the moon and the sun. You must burn this castle to the ground and all of your men must be killed by this fire in the dungeon. You will have a great marriage then… But now I must rest.” Flora & Fauna 225 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “R-r-r-r-right this way please,” stammered the son. Soon, when night fell, she went down to the dungeon to find Squeak. She found Squeak at her father’s cell. “Oh father you look… so thin, pale and tired. How have these dogs been treating you?” Morgiana wept. “Is that you my daughter? Oh you, look at you, you smell like mud!” said the frail man. “Father, I swear on my life you will be freed and these scoundrels will pay!” Morgiana declared. So she went and found the cell keys laying carelessly on an iron hook at the entrance. She grabbed them and freed her father. They ran away and were safe from the dreadful son. They left the dummy in the woods. Three days later the son made everyone in the castle go to the dungeon and bring a barrel of oil with them. “Why would the prince want us to do this?” cried the general. “Who knows? Just do it!” barked the son’s right hand man. “Wait, my brother heard that the prince was going to burn us to have a good marriage,” cried a guard. Everyone started to talk anxiously, and soon they made a plan. They planned to lock the prince in the dungeon instead. When the prince came in to light the dungeon on fire, after he had already burned the whole castle, all the prisoners and guards watched him knowing what he planned to do. After he lit the fire, he bolted to the entrance but was pushed back by all the prisoners and guards as they rushed to the door. They locked the son in with the raging fire until the fire swallowed him up. Then Morgiana and her father let Squeak go, but Squeak did not want to leave her because they had been through so much together, so Morgiana kept the jerboa as her pet. They all lived Happily Ever After with their new pet, Squeak! Flora & Fauna 226 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Important Lizard Lesson Kellen Weimers - 5 th After killing the king of the thieves, Morgiana got a reward from Ali Baba. He invited her to the cave of wonders to pick her prize from his magical creatures. The creatures were the flying camel, the speedy jerboa, the large scarab beetle, the wise cobra, or the jewel encrusted golden armadillo lizard. Morgiana looked at all of them very carefully, but the rich, sparkley colors of the armadillo lizard were too hard to resist. Once she took it home, she started to regret her choice because the lizard just sat on the table looking at her and was pretty boring. Morgiana wished she had picked the camel, but she went to sleep that night repeating to herself, You get what you get and you don’t throw a fit. The next day, the lizard was still asleep when she woke up, and she noticed it curled up into an “O” shape when it slept. It even held onto its tale with its mouth. Scooping it up, she slipped it on to her wrist. It looked like the most beautiful bracelet she had ever seen. It was like she didn’t have a lizard; she had the finest piece of jewelry and wanted to show everyone! Then she went to town wearing her new “bracelet” wanting to show it off to everyone. Morgiana made sure to only point with that hand when she was ordering things from the market. Everyone complimented her on her lovely bracelet, and she would respond, “I know, my bracelet is much better than all of yours.” Flora & Fauna 227 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Continuing through the markets she showed off her bracelet and returned all of the compliments with insults. But she wasn’t usually a mean person—she was caught up being a show off. She was so carried away she didn’t pay attention to whom she was bragging. She made sure everyone knew she had the fanciest bracelet in the land. Morgiana didn’t notice the dark eyes of the evil thieves in the shadows of the market. They were also taken with the sparkle of the lizard, thinking it was jewelry and not an animal. They whispered to each other and started making plans to steal it. Soon, she had bragged to everyone around, so she went home to rest. The robbers also left and went to their hideout to discuss how to get the lizard bracelet. One suggested they sneak in while she was gone. “No, you brainless rat,” said the second one, “We know she’ll wear it when she’s gone.” The second one suggested they knock her out and steal it. “No way, dummy,” said the first one, “If we knock her out, she’ll be able to say we did it when she wakes up.” “Anyone else have a better idea?” asked the second one. “I have a brilliant one,” said the Captain. “We have a genie’s lamp.” The thieves had their plan. When the genie came out of his lamp he granted them one wish, and they asked for equipment to break in to Morgiana’s house, so they could steal the jeweled “bracelet.” The genie gave them a torch to melt the lock and earplugs for Morgiana so she wouldn’t hear them. That night they broke in, and stole the armadillo lizard. It is important to know that when armadillo lizards are afraid, they roll up and bite their tale and stay very still until the danger passes. The thieves never knew they didn’t have a solid gold lizard bracelet. Flora & Fauna 228 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The next morning, Morgiana woke up to find that her lizard wasn’t rolled up in his bed. She looked everywhere for him, but he had vanished. She thought hard about what had happened the day before. We were having so much fun together showing everyone my most beautiful bracelet... Oh no! What have I done? she wondered, realizing everyone in the market had paid attention to her bragging. She ran outside and saw the melted lock. Her fears were right; her lizard had been stolen. She asked for help, but everyone was still mad about how rude she was the day before and wouldn’t help her. Some were even glad the bracelet was gone, and thought maybe she’d be nicer now. She was pretty sure they were the cousins of the thieves she had killed, so she got busy making a plan of her own. That night she dressed in dark clothes and veils like a thief and went to the cave of wonders at midnight. She remembered the password to open the cave door used to be “Open Sesame,” so she tried that first. She was sure they would have changed it, but the door slid open. Really? Morgiana thought to herself, You couldn’t think of a new password? Not even 1-2-3-4-5? Then she slipped into the cave to find her golden armadillo lizard. The cave was dark and seemed empty, but then she heard some noises. Evil laughter came from deep in the cave. She followed the sound and found one of the thieves looking at her “bracelet” and laughing about how rich he would be now. Her dancing had distracted the thieves long enough for her to kill them the last time she was in this cave. Morgiana danced into the room and was so graceful the thief just stared at her movement. Morgiana quickly threw her dagger and it stabbed him in the heart, and he fell to the ground. She scooped up the lizard and ran out of the cave. The little jewels sparkled as the lizard uncoiled now that he was safely in the hands of Morgiana again. Flora & Fauna 229 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 She spent the next few days in her house. This time she didn’t treat the lizard like jewelry, instead she treated him like a pet. And as the days passed, he didn’t just stare at her, he began to play and wasn’t boring after all. Their favorite game was ring toss. The lizard would curl up and bite his tale and Morgiana would toss him at the dagger she had stabbed into the wooden table top. Most of the time he would fit easily over the handle, and she would score a point. They would play this game for hours. Finally it was time to leave the house and do some shopping. Morgiana got dressed up and slipped her most beautiful bracelet onto her arm, then covered it with her long sleeve. Everyone noticed when she came to the market, but kept busy with what they had been doing. They feared maybe she had a new thing to brag about or would choose to just put down what they had. She quietly picked out what she needed with her other hand, and was careful to greet everyone she knew with kind words and a smile. “I am so sorry your bracelet is gone,” said one of her friends after the bragging and insults never started. “Oh, I found it,” Morgiana said, pulling up her sleeve to show the shiny, gold lizard curled around her arm. “It really is most beautiful,” sighed her friend. And looking at the dusty braided string with clay beads around her friend’s wrist she said, “So is yours.” th Ashug Gurijala - 5 Flora & Fauna 230 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Weather Related As clichéd as “it was a dark and stormy night” is, it helps to set an instant mood, it paves the way for the story to come. Setting is integral to plot, in that it offers a forum for a given set of characters, a way of life, the pace of a story; the South implies a gentle slowness due to an inescapable heat, a journey to Everest implies snow will be a burden to the characters, Atlantis offers a never ending underwater delight. Any way you slice it, setting, and its ever-present weather, help to define the world of any story. Given that the 7th grade study the vast world of Earth Science, they are uniquely qualified to delve into their own ‘weather related’ tales of woe and wonder, magic and mayhem. From tornadoes to hurricanes, earthquakes to tsunamis, the stories beyond are inextricably intertwined with the weather that drives them. The art here is also defined by mood, using watercolors and manipulative tools, students took to the skies to explore extreme weather and its artistic counterpoint. Never before has art imitated life with more beauty and grandeur. Flora & Fauna 231 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The 4 Elements Francesco Savian - 7 th Steven sprinted out of the English room, and turned left to go to his next class, science. He was nearing the science room when he tripped, and went flying through the door. From the ground, he turned around to face his assailant, though he already knew who it was, Rodney Blanche, the meanest of the meanest, the king of the jungle. Rodney sneered down at him, with his gang of followers standing close behind. He was the biggest bully of them all, and it was just Steven’s luck that he went to Lynwood High. Steven’s mother, being positive, always tried to tell him that one day Rodney would save his life or something, but Steven wouldn’t believe it. Now, back to the present. “Little help there, Stevie Wonder?” Rodney asked, a huge grin on his face. “No thank you, I’m fine,” Steven replied, and followed Rodney inside the science room, muttering something about trying to save his life. After the usual dull and boring lecture about the planets, Steven went to his after school club, Board Games. He knew it was dumb, but it was the most decent club that Rodney wasn’t in. So he joined it, which he didn’t have to, but his mom wanted him to, because she got off her job late, and she didn’t want him to stay home alone, after watching Home Alone 2: Lost in New York. There were only something like three people, but today there were four. Rodney had showed up, just to make Steven’s after school life miserable. So Rodney, Steven, and two fraternal twins named Sonya and Alex started the game. Today’s game consisted of a huge, labyrinthine, rectangular board with three dice, and a deck of cards. The players had to work together to move around the board on squares on the path, like Candyland, but without the money or jail, but the path being very sophisticated with traps like moving back three Flora & Fauna 232 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 spaces or losing a turn. They had to get to every corner with their own strangely shaped markers which looked like grotesque gargoyles, and when they reached a corner, they would put the 3D symbol of the element on it. The shapes were: pyramid for fire, sphere for water, cube for earth, and dodecahedron for air. They couldn’t really find the glass shapes, so they decide to use strips of paper. Alex started to read the rules: “Okay, so the objective is to get your figure to the corners, and put these strips of paper, a substitute for the shapes on the corner. It’s actually kind of fun once you start, I think. It says on the back you are not allowed to leave the game unfinished, and to play at your own risk, probably just a joke to make it scary.” They started the game and decided to go oldest to youngest. Rodney yawned and his head rested in his arms, and he decided to leave, to the huge glee of Steven, but the moment he touched the door handle, he teleported back to where he came from, which went unnoticed by the twins, but Steven saw it, and thought he was hallucinating. Sonya went first, and before she grabbed a card, it flew up, and she caught it. Rodney gave a yelp of surprise, and punched Sonya’s hand. Steven stared at her in amazement, and so did her brother. Everyone took several steps back, away from the board. Sonya’s eyes welled up with tears, and she looked at her brother for help. He finally snapped out of his shock, and he only told Rodney to back off because he really didn’t want Rodney to give him a wedgie. Rodney glared at him, and before he could step forward, Sonya was dragged across the room to the three dice on the board on the other side of the room by an invisible hand. She threw them quickly and she got a four, six, and a two, which got her to the first element: air. Sonya’s marker moved by itself to the square of air as if magnetically connected to the board. At this point everyone in the room got scared, and they moved Flora & Fauna 233 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 to the far end, away from the board game. Sonya was infuriated. She turned, and looked at her brother. “Where,” she said in a deadly whisper, “DID YOU GET THAT GAME?!” She screamed the last part, and it was enough to make Rodney jump a foot in the air. Alex hung his head, and said that he bought it several years ago, and had dug it out of the attic yesterday, unopened. Steven looked over at the board, while Sonya told Alex that he had bought it at the store that closed down the following year. The reason for its closure was that reports of weird magical stuff happening to the people that had bought trinkets there. One of these “problems” was that a man had bought a flute that had the power to rise the dead and make them do your bidding. The day after its closure was confirmed, the store’s front had turned into a brick wall, and the clerk had disappeared. Suddenly, Steven’s eyes widened as he stared at the board, and he gasped. Rodney said, “Oh, what happ…”, and then he saw what Steven was looking at. The twins looked over, too, and saw it, too. The demon-like figures they were using as marker started to vibrate, and their faces began to morph to look like the person who was controlling them. Suddenly, Steven began to understand. Now it all made sense. The face morph, the origin of the game, Rodney not being able to leave the room, and Sonya’s trip across the room to throw the dice. He said, “Guys, I think that this game is cursed. We are not allowed to abandon the game unfinished, for we are part of the game, and now we must beat it to be allowed to leave unharmed. This also means that the last part that Alex read on the rules was a warning for us. It wasn’t a joke.” As usual, Rodney was clueless. “So….” Sonya sighed, and said, “So you idiot, we need to start playing!” Flora & Fauna 234 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 And so they got up and started towards the board, but they stopped in their tracks, and Steven said, “Is it just me, or it’s getting a bit cold?” “I think it <sniff> is cold”, Rodney replied. “Does it say in the rules that this game also turn on the AC, as a requirement?” Steven sneezed, and when he opened his eyes he was looking at his town in the middle of a windstorm. They had been brought there magically by the unknown forces regulating the game, and there was no one around, because they had to find the shape as soon as possible. Steven was nearly knocked off balance by the wind, and he told Sonya to quickly read the card. She was confused, but she remembered the card, and said: In the midst of wind and cold, What you seek is more precious than gold. Seek it where you are controlled, And seen with a fold And it is, a beautiful sight to behold, Which will be your savior, all told. “A riddle. Well, we should begin with the city hall,” yelled Sonya over the wind. “I guess we should just go over there and see, because we are sort of controlled in a way. Right?” They agreed and began carefully treading their way to the city hall in the uninhabited city, without being blown away by the wind, which came in never ending gusts. They finally arrived, and looked for the fold that was mentioned in the riddle. “Up there!” Rodney yelled, “I see it! It is inside the fold of the flag that is frozen solid!” Steven looked, and saw the dodecahedron. It was indeed a beautiful sight, because he was tired of getting tossed about and the storm wasn’t looking any nicer. They decided to make a human ladder with Sonya on top. She reached for it, and suddenly she was gone. Steven Flora & Fauna 235 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 looked up and saw her yelling and screaming, carried by the wind, until she finally disappeared into the dark horizon, her jacket flapping behind her as she flew. Alex screamed, and Steven reached for the shape. He jumped, which caused the two below him to fall, and he fingered the flag. The ice shattered, and the dodecahedron fell, now with nothing to hold it. He caught the shape, and he disappeared before he hit the ground. They were back in the classroom. Rodney bolted for the door, but after three steps, he was blown backward, again. Meanwhile, Steven had to convince Alex to play and that his sister would be fine if they won. He rolled the dice and landed on fire. He shuddered, picked a card and the classroom vanished once more. They were in the same spot as they started before, only the city was on fire. Alex said: While stranded in this city of fire, To survive you do require, Courage, lust and strength one must acquire. Look up, and keep looking higher, See that to cross the wire. Look for the wood faced liar, And when found, look closely so as not to end in the fryer. “Well, I guess we should look up.” Rodney said, matter-of-factly. “Yeah,” Steven agreed. And so they did. They looked up, and there was nothing, the smoke was too thick. Alex started to run to the left, where the flames were brightest, and he then started to climb up the emergency ladder on the side of the building, and Steven understood. Alex wanted to go up the ladder, to the wire mentioned in the riddle. Steven followed and after a few floors they saw the telephone wire, and they began to Flora & Fauna 236 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 cross it. Alex, who was in front hopped through a window from the pole, and Steven and Rodney followed suit. Steven’s eyes adjusted, and he noticed they were in the museum, on the floor with statues. He looked around, and he saw a small statue of Pinocchio. Steven told the others about it, and that it matched with the “wood-faced” part of the poem. Rodney got Spartacus’ sword from the floor below, the Ancient Rome exhibit, and bashed the poor Pinocchio to pieces, expecting to find the pyramid. Instead they found a key. “Well, at least we know we weren’t wrong,” said Steven. “Now we just look for a lock…” WHOOSH!! Fire entered the room, and they ran to the back. They found a locked door which led to the roof, and the key worked. They ran up the stairs, and Alex tripped, and was engulfed by the flames. Steven was going to be beat to the top by the fire, when he saw the pyramid. Rodney tackled him, which pushed him right to the pyramid, and Rodney and Steven were back in the classroom. Rodney started crying, but the two continued to play until Rodney landed on earth. He grabbed the card, and they were transported to the same spot, the town square, only nothing was happening. Rodney started to read: As you travel in the city of your birth You must find what you are worth, First, head north, And run like the wind to the hill of earth, And when reached, look into the firth. The prize of which you must unearth. Steven heard a rumble, and the floor below him started to tremble. He looked up to see the clock tower falling right where he was, but it was too late to move. Rodney ran toward him and pushed him out of the way of the tower, and managed to escape it too. Steven thanked him and Flora & Fauna 237 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 realized that his mother had been right-Rodney did save his life. They ran to what they though was north, until they reached the city park. They were safe from falling buildings, but cracks started to form on the ground. They kept running until they reached the hill in the center of the park. Rodney didn’t know what a firth was, so Steven explained it to him, and they found that two streams joined on the other side of the hill, and saw that the cube sat in a hole at the junction of the streams. They ran toward it, when suddenly a huge crevice appeared on the ground. Steven managed to catch Rodney, but the sweat on his hands and Rodney’s weight made his grip on Rodney weak, and so he fell in. Steven watched him go through darkness. He grabbed the cube, and held it to his chest. Steven was back in the classroom alone, and he rolled the dice. He reached the final corner, water, and picked up the card. Suddenly he appeared in the sewers of the city, not in the usual spot next to the clock tower. And so he read the card after a moment’s hesitation: As you swim in saltwater, Remember, the water will get taller. To best this, you must get stronger. If not, you will only be remembered by your mother. Swim, if you must, for the trip will be shorter, If you swim towards the gutter. At this point Steven noticed that the water level was rising, so he began to sprint forward. He realized after several minutes it was getting harder to run because the current was against him, and he began to read the card until it reached the last line. The opening to the sphere was in the other direction! Luckily, he was a strong swimmer, but he was not a good runner, and so he moved in the other direction. The only good thing about it was the current favored him and he was able to use less energy. Flora & Fauna 238 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Finally the huge pipe filled up completely, and Steven swam as hard as he could. There were a few turns which he didn’t see until the last second because the saltwater stung his eyes. He couldn’t take it anymore, and so he made the last turn and found a grate, which he began punching. It hurt, and the water slowed down his punches, which did less damage until it broke, and he grabbed a sphere with a smile on his face. He opened his eyes, and found himself laying on the ground in the classroom, and he looked up. He had never been happier to see Alex, Sonya, or even Rodney. They all decided to keep this a secret between themselves. Alex took the game with him, and promised to throw it away. Steven walked home thinking of his Olympic worthy swim until he was greeted by his mom, Helen. “How was your day, honey?” she asked. “Just fine, mom,” sighed Steven. “Just fine.” Jessica Lama - 7 Flora & Fauna th 239 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Hurricane Mikayla James - 7 th When the light turns green, I turn left and park as near to the building as possible. Getting out of my red Chevy Cruze, I grab my purse and keys, and slam the door shut behind me. I stride confidently into the waiting area of the building and sit in one of the cream-colored leather chairs that are placed in the corner of the room. My phone vibrates with chiming tones, telling me that I have received a text. Taking my phone out of my purse, I enter the password and when the screen lights up, I click on the text message icon to read the new message. Are you here yet? it reads. I debate whether to reply or not and decide to send a message saying that I am here. Just a few minutes later, a man in an expensive-looking silk suit comes out to meet me. “Hello, Ms. Matsumoto. It is nice to finally meet you. Welcome to Paranormal Encounters. I am the host, Jason Smith. We spoke on the phone,” he says before reaching out to shake my hand. “Hi, Mr. Smith, it is nice to meet you, too. Call me Tori. I must thank you for inviting me to this interview,” I reply. So saying, I shake his hand and smile politely. “You are very welcome. By the way, you can call me Jason. Now, just come this way and I will show you to the interview room,” he says. He turns and leads the way through the winding path of offices and break rooms while I follow. Finally, after what seems like hours, we arrive at our final destination, the interview room. Mr. Smith, being a gentleman, opens the door for me and asks me to sit in the chair opposite from his. After we have both sat down, the door opens and a woman with a clipboard comes in and asks when they should start recording. He says that he will signal her when we are ready, and the lady nods her consent and leaves, the door swinging shut behind her. I tense at the thought of Flora & Fauna 240 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 being on live television with millions of people watching. The only reason I am doing this interview is because the company was going to pay me, and I need the money for my family. Jason notices my unease and asks me if I want anything. I smile and tell him that I will be fine. Then he explains what I will have to do and when I am ready, he signals the woman who had talked to us before and she begins to count down. “Five, four, three, two, one, and we are on air,” she says, loud enough for everyone to hear. Jason turns to the camera and begins to talk. “Hello, and you are watching Paranormal Encounters. I am the host, Jason Smith. Today, here with me is Ms. Tori Matsumoto. She is going to recount her adventure of how she saved her family and others after they had gone missing because of a series of freak hurricanes,” with that, he looks to me to begin talking. I think for a second about where to start, and begin to speak. “Hi, as you know, I am Tori Matsumoto and I am eighteen. I live in the city of Sapporo on Hokkaido, an island of Japan. My parents died two years before the incident, so I now care solely for my two siblings, Aki, who is three, and Alana, who is eight. To keep them in school, I have to work a lot. “I remember the day my brother and sister went missing, as if it were yesterday. I was at work, when I received a call from their babysitter late in the afternoon. She said that a hurricane was headed straight for the house. Before I could answer, there was a giant crash in the background, a horrid scream, and the line went dead. “I started to panic, fearing for the safety of my family. I tried to call back several times, tears running down my face, but the operator kept telling me that the phone was off line. Then the sirens in the building began to go off, the beacons flashing bright red. The hurricane was in sight. It was majestic, in a terrifying way. The last bits of sunlight Flora & Fauna 241 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 that were not smothered by the gray clouds in the sky glinted off the swirling vortex of water in arcs of light, creating mini rainbows in the dark. The office was in chaos, people were screaming and crowding around the stairwell trying to get away. I pushed past all of them and bolted down five flights of stairs to get my car. I put my keys into the ignition, started the car, and drove as quickly as I could to my house. When I got there, the hurricane had vanished, and left the city a disaster. The houses were okay, but trees and cars had been blown into the streets. “The streets were flooded and water was everywhere. All the citizens were in a state of frenzy, amazed at how the hurricane had come and gone so quickly. But, no matter how much I asked around and searched, I could not find my brother or sister anywhere. It was as if they had just disappeared and no one had noticed. I attempted to call the babysitter, but it went straight to voice mail, so I left a message, but somehow I knew that she would not call back anytime soon. “Exhausted, I went back home and made myself some dinner, while pondering the disappearance of my siblings. Where could they be? Could they have gone into hiding? Were they swept away by the hurricane? Where could they have gone?, I asked myself. It occurred to me to call the police and report the missing people, but I decided not to and to try to find them myself because I thought that they could have not gone very far. “While eating my dinner, I tried to figure out where they might have gone, but nowhere practical came to mind. Flora & Fauna 242 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 When I had finished my meal, I changed into my pajamas and searched on my computer for any clues that might help me solve my mystery. Finding nothing useful, I decided to get some rest and then in the morning go to the library and see if I could find anything on hurricanes or natural disasters. So, with this decision in hand and many questions on my mind, I padded into my room, crawled under the covers of my bed and fell asleep. “The next morning I got up early and after getting dressed, drove to Starbucks, where I bought a black coffee big enough to get me through the long day ahead of me. Then, with my coffee in hand, I went to the library and searched for all the books I could possibly find on hurricanes or freak natural disasters. I spent more than half of my day looking in dusty shelves and bookcases for these much needed books. At the end of my search, I had found around twenty books, most of which were for children. I checked them all out, and then, wobbling a little under their weight, I put them in the trunk of my car and drove home to look through them for any useful information. “I looked through book after book, until there was one left, but had not yet found any useful information. As I picked up the last book and opened it, I found that it was a journal from the 1800s. In one of the entries, the owner had written about how his wife had gone missing after a hurricane had struck his hometown. At first, I thought that this was similar to my situation and it might be of some help, but then threw away the thought in disgust, taking it for fiction. “I slumped on the couch in my living room, tired from all the work I had done that day. Realizing that I was hungry, I went to the kitchen to get some grapes and then sat back down to watch some television before doing anything further. I turned on the TV and the screen flared to life. Apparently, one of my siblings had been watching the news when it was last turned it off. I was about to change Flora & Fauna 243 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 the channel when the newscaster abruptly stopped and said, 'BREAKING NEWS! Another freak hurricane has hit the city of Sapporo in Japan and taken three people with it. So far three hurricanes have hit and during each, two to three have people disappeared.' Then I turned off the TV because that was all I needed to hear. “The pieces clicked together and it all made sense now. The journal was not just fantasy, it was fact. It must be that every two hundred years or so, these freak storms hit cities and cause people to go missing. Franticly, I grabbed the journal, and in my haste, dropped it. When I picked it up, a paper fell out and fluttered to the floor. I set the book back down on the coffee table and reached down to pick the paper up from the floor and when I straightened up again with the mysterious paper in hand, I saw that it was a map to an island in the Pacific Ocean! It probably leads to wherever these people are swept away to, I thought to myself, this is my chance to save my family. I booked a plane flight for the next day to go to French Polynesia, which was about 200 miles from my actual destination. Then I went to sleep, preparing for the long day ahead of me. “I woke up extra early since my flight left at 5:30 a.m. and packed all my necessary things in a duffel bag, loaded it into my car, and drove to the airport. I waited in line after line to get my plane ticket and go through security. By the time I came to my gate, they were already boarding. I got in the line to board and was quickly ushered into the plane. The flight was about twelve hours and by the time I landed, it was around eleven o' clock at night, so I took a taxi to my hotel, got my room key, took my stuff up to my room, and as soon as I climbed into bed, I went right to sleep. “The next morning, I drove to a private airport, where I had arranged for a helicopter to fly me to the island. I met the pilot, who was very nice and he welcomed me to his Flora & Fauna 244 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 homeland, although he told me that the place where I wanted to go was nothing but ocean. I dismissed the comment and boarded the helicopter. As we neared the spot where he was supposed to drop me off, a strong wind began to blow us off course. He said that we should get out of there and I readily agreed. The wind began to blow very hard as we turned around, WHOOSH! a rogue wind came out of nowhere, causing the helicopter to go off balance and tip to the side. I lost my balance and fell, but luckily I caught the bottom of the helicopter just in time. The wind began blowing even harder and I began to lose my grip. One by one, my fingers slipped off and soon I was suspended by only three fingers of my right hand, and I lost my grip entirely and tumbled through the air toward the ocean at a very high speed as the helicopter went out of sight. The last thing I saw was the ocean coming toward me very fast, before I slipped away into nothingness. “I could hear noise...the sound of waves crashing calmly against the shore of the beach. Then, though my eyelids felt very heavy, I opened my eyes as best I could and sat upright. With half-closed eyes, I took in myself as well as my surroundings. I was soaking wet and sand covered every inch of my body. As I looked around me, I saw that I was on a sandy beach, the waves lapping at my legs, as if beckoning me forward. “I tried to stand up, but fell back down, my legs feeling wobbly and stiff. I attempted to stand a second time, which I did successfully. Turning around to face inland, I saw that I was not alone on this island. I could see plumes of smoke coming forth from the tops of the trees. I began to walk forward, but I saw something out of the corner of my eye that caught my attention, the light shining off an object lying against the sand. “Turning to my right I bent down to examine my discovery. Picking it up, I saw that it was the locket which I Flora & Fauna 245 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 had given to my sister for her sixth birthday. Excited, I slipped it into the pocket of my drenched shorts and started off toward the smoke, approaching it cautiously. As I neared the tree-line, I saw a pathway rudely cut into the forest of trees. By instinct I began to walk down this path which lead me farther into the trees. As I neared the source of the smoke, I noted that it was in fact a coastal village with little houses with thatched roofs. The smoke that I saw were from fires that were lit inside the houses. I walked toward the small village and an inhabitant, upon seeing my arrival, came out to meet me. “Hello,” he said, “You have come to the village of Chachagua on the island of Ke Kai. I am Ekewaka, chief of this place. What is your business here?” “Hi, I am Tori Matsumoto. I came here looking for my sister and brother and I think that they might be staying here,” I said to him. “You search for a little boy and girl, yes?” he questioned. “How did you know?” I asked him. “A boy, and two girls washed up on the shore a few days ago. My tribe found them and one of our women took them in to care for them. Let me show you where they are.” He led me along a row of houses and stopped at the last home on the left. “They are in there,” he said pointing to the house. Then he turned and began to walk back, leaving me standing in the dirt-packed road rather awkwardly. “Finally, I decided to go knock on the door. I walked up the steps to the house and rapped my knuckle on the wood loudly. I heard the floor creak inside as someone came to answer the door. An elderly women dressed in a green cotton dress with her hair in a knot at the nape of her neck opened the door and ushered me inside. The threshold lead to what looked like a family room, with a small brown couch and a fire in the middle of the room with a hole in the ceiling for the smoke to go through. Flora & Fauna 246 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “The lady led me away from the fire through a doorway which went into a bedroom with a small twin-sized bed and a chest of drawers. Sitting on the wooden floor of the room was Alana and Aki playing a card game with Marissa, their babysitter, watching over them. Upon hearing my arrival, both children turned toward the doorway to see the newcomer. When they saw me, their faces lit up like candles on a dark night. Alana jumped up and wrapped me in a big bear hug and Aki waddled over and clapped his little hands, a smile on his face. “After that, we all sat on the bed and talked. I recounted my story to them and they told me of how the hurricane had swept them away and they had ended up on Ke Kai. I gave Alana her locket, which she told me that she lost. Then the woman who allowed me into the house came in again and brought us some snacks. While we were eating some grapes two little children who looked like twins around the age of five came in and asked if they could have some grapes, too. Alana introduced them as Hokulani and Kaulana, who had been taken by the hurricane from their home in Hawaii. Seeing that these little girls were stranded here too, I became determined to find a way to get them and my family home. So leaving the small abode, I set off to find the chief. “When I came to the center of the village, I found the chief and other men sitting around a big fire. When, he saw me, he stood and came to greet me, asking if I had seen my siblings. I said that I had and proposed he question of getting off the island. Hearing this, he led me into a lowceilinged hut, were he bent and picked up a radio. “This radio connects us to the Papeete, French Polynesia, so that we can inform people there when we need more supplies. Talk to them and convince them to send a helicopter to come and take you there, where you can take a plane back to your home,” he said, handing me the radio. Then he showed me how to use the device and Flora & Fauna 247 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 left, leaving me alone to talk to these strangers. I turned on the radio and had a long conversation with the person on the other end of the line, who was called Jonathon, explaining my situation and pleading for help. Jonathan agreed to send an aide to take them and that they would arrive in around four hours. “After this, I hurried back to my family, and told them the good news. Then I was given new clothes to replace my old ones and I showered, the water washing all the sand out of my hair and off of my body. We were each given a set of new clothes for the trip ahead, and when the helicopter land we were all packed and boarded the plane for the four hour flight. “When we arrived in French Polynesia, we were driven to the hotel in which I had stayed before and Aki, Alana, Hokulani, Kaulana, Marissa, and I all shared one room, but luckily only for one night. We agreed that the next day Marissa would take Aki and Alana with her back to Japan, while I would take the other girls back to Hawaii. The next day, I said goodbye to Aki and Alana and chaperoned Hokulani, and Kaulana on the six hour flight to Hawaii, where their parents were waiting at the airport in Honolulu and their family was reunited. Then I took a flight back to Sapporo by myself and finally went home for the first time in days.” With that I signal to Jason that I had finished my story. “How heroic of you Tori! You saved not only your family, but two other little girls too,” says Jason. He reaches out to shake my hand, which I gladly do, and then says, “And that’s the end of this episode of Paranormal Encounters. Tune in next week to hear an adventure of Tom Raymond's encounter with aliens.” Then the lady with the clipboard yells, “CUT!” and the camera ceases to record. Jason and I both stand up and he thanks me for coming and offers to escort me to my car. I accept his offer and again, he leads me through the Flora & Fauna 248 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 building, out of the reception area and back to my bright red car. Once more, he thanks me for coming and says that he hopes that I had a great experience and we say our goodbyes. As he walks away, I get into my car and drive home, back to my loving family, glad that the interview is over. Michael Futritski - 7 Lauren Yeh - 7 Flora & Fauna th th 249 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Hole in the Rock Ethan Fein- 7 th Finally. The perfect city was almost complete. Henry and his friend George were architects. They were the ones who had designed this city. All those golden roofs and roads, the emeralds and rubies showing off the wealth of the city by being embedded in the golden roads—it was all because of them. And now it was just a few short days from completion. Or maybe not. “Mwahahahahaha! It is I, the Mad Mover!” said a man in a dark gray suit with a cape. He had a funnel-shaped emblem on his chest and cape. In the shape were two M’s. He strode toward the mayor of the city, Jove, who sat on his platinum throne being fanned. What he was being fanned for was a mystery to Henry. The weather was always perfect in Aurumville. Until that day. The mayor said, “What can I help you with, sir.” “Nothing, you blithering idiot! Now be quiet!” responded the man. Henry hadn’t noticed it before, but the man had a British accent. His body shape was a bit familiar to Henry, but he couldn’t put a finger on who he was, as his face was obscured by a gray mask. The “Mad Mover” walked around muttering. Henry didn’t exactly hear what he was saying, but he heard things like “perfect addition” and “yes, yes.” The villain suddenly turned and screamed, “You should leave unless you want certain death!” The streets were soon filled with frantic people filling bags of treasure as fast as they could before sprinting off into the forest. When the city was clear, the Mad Mover looked around and then spun once, twice, thrice, until he was surrounded by a one hundred foot tall tornado. It moved toward the town, stripping it of all its luxuries. In a matter of minutes, a city that took years to build was Flora & Fauna 250 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 ruined. The citizens looked around. The gold was gone, along with the jewels, leaving behind normal dirt roads and roofless houses. They could not salvage one thing. The people were in a state of panic. The last thing they saw was a swirling mass of precious metals going off into the west. They decided that they needed to go after it. They elected the architects, George and Henry, to go. Jove also was chosen to go, as he was the leader. George and Henry were both tall and fit, but Jove was short and fat. Everybody said that if Jove was worth his weight in gold, Aurumville would be broke, as Jove was so ginormous that there wouldn’t be enough to go around. Henry and George wanted to leave right away, but Jove wanted to stash another couple bags of food on their wagon. This was the only wagon left in the city. It was like a pioneer wagon, except like an RV inside. It was pulled by mechanical gold horses that would never get tired, just overheated. They had to stop every eight hours to cool down and recharge for an hour. The wagon was stocked with enough food to last a couple months. They started off two hours later and waved goodbye to the others. George and Henry knew they were in for a long trip, they just didn’t know how long it would be. The first couple days were smooth, and they followed the huge trail of destruction left by the tornado. But then they hit a snag. Or two. The first was that the trail disappeared. The second was that the horses had overheated too much and wouldn’t work. They had overheated so much, that the control panel was fried. Henry and George got out, but soon after they heard a click. Jove had locked himself inside with all the food. George put his foot through the window and climbed in. He looked in all the bags of food for the repair bag. It was nowhere to be seen. He grabbed Jove and pulled him out. “What are you doing to me?!” yelled Jove. Flora & Fauna 251 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “I’m taking you out of the wagon so you don’t eat all the food and because the horses broke down,” said George. “The horses broke down?” spluttered Jove, hyperventilating. “And you had to take out the bag with the repair tools to make way for more food, so now we can’t use the wagon anymore, so it’s your fault.” “Yeah,” said Henry, “Now we have to go on foot.” Jove let out an earsplitting scream and curled up on the ground. “On FOOT!” cried Jove, “How will I survive? We can’t carry all the food on foot!” Henry and George stood by trying in vain to prevent their laughter as Jove rolled around throwing his tantrum. They pulled him up and grabbed a few bags of food. They each took two and tied one around Jove’s shoulders. He went along, whimpering slightly, but silent for the most part. They trudged on, and slowly the three food bags turned into two food bags. A few weeks after they left, they hit a desert. No one had been very far from Aurumville before, so this was uncharted territory. Jove let out a small groan when he saw the endless sand and Henry shared a grin with George. Just then, they heard a squelching sound like something being pulled into the ground and George suddenly got a couple inches shorter. “Help, help!” screamed George, his eyes wide with terror. He was caught in quicksand. Henry grabbed his forearm and pulled. It was not enough, so Henry grabbed Jove and kicked his legs out from under him. The force of him falling was enough to launch George out of the sand. When George recovered, they continued on. That night, they made camp and rolled out their sleeping bags. At around one in the morning, they were sound asleep, but a Flora & Fauna 252 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 light whistling woke George up. He stood and looked around. He saw an outline of the tornado leaving a circle of destruction fifty feet around camp. He woke up the others and they jogged toward the tornado. But when they got there, the tornado was gone, and in its place was a huge rift around the camp. They went to the edge and looked over the side. There was a sheer cliff and if any of them fell they would die on the rocks below. Henry found a rock embedded deeply in the sand and tied a rope to it. He threw the other end to the other side until it snagged between a couple rocks. George, the lightest, hung on to the rope with his hands and feet and shimmied across. When he got across, he anchored the rope better and held it as Henry came across. When Jove got on the rope, Henry accidentally kicked the anchor and the rope fell, Jove with it. He landed on a ledge, luckily and called up to his companions. “You guys need to get down here. You will not believe what I just found.” Henry and George looked at each other and then George jumped, caught the hanging rope, and swung onto the ledge. He gasped, causing Henry to shake his head and jump down after his friend. When he reached the ledge, he walked forward into an eight by ten hole in the rock. What he saw amazed him. The man who had walked through Aurumville was there, and all the parts of the houses that disappeared in the tornado were in this very cavern. The streets were the very streets of gold and jewels that had been in Aurumville. The only differences were the parts that were still in Aurumville. Instead of the bright yellow houses there, in the cave there were dull gray houses with the Aurumville golden roofs next to them. The houses were frames and the roofs were waiting to be put into place. The man turned to face them and laughed maniacally. He took out a video game controller and pressed a series of buttons. Flora & Fauna 253 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Metal clamps came from above, cuffing the trio’s hands and feet. The villain came towards them. “As I said a few weeks back, I am the Mad Mover. I am the tornado. I am the power. I am the weather.” He spun three times and turned into a tornado. After a few revolutions, he returned to his normal state. The threesome was in shock. The villain turned from them and created small tornadoes to carry the roofs onto the frames of the houses. Once they were in place, he turned back and said, “Once I have my city completed, I will go back to your petty town and abduct the people. Soon enough they will be lugging the gold of your treasuries to my feet,” he finished with a sneer. “As for you, you will be striving to make this city the best. People will flock from all over the world, bringing tribute. And if they don’t, their cities will be rubble. Except for the treasuries, those will go to me. Mwahahahahahahaha!” laughed the Mad Mover. He strode over to them and undid the metal cuffs. He tied them each around the waist so that they were roped in a line and gave them tools. Seeing nothing to help their situation, the three men took the tools and started working. This life went on for a few weeks, and soon Jove got slimmer and the others stronger. When the fifth week rolled around, they were making a door for the Mad Mover’s mansion, when they heard yelling. The secretary of Aurumville came in with a mob of Aurumville citizens. “We found an entrance a mile back, but we followed the trail and found a new entrance at that rift over here. We decided to follow your trail a week after you left, because we thought there could be trouble. When we saw the horses, our feelings were confirmed,” said Robert, Jove’s secretary. The crowd murmured their assent. The Mad Mover was away terrorizing other cities and would soon be on his way Flora & Fauna 254 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 back. When he was close, the people, who had been warned of what he could do, hid, and Henry, George, and Jove went back to work. When the Mad Mover came, he went into his mansion and Henry fitted the door as he went in. Unbeknownst to all, a man and his wife had gone into the mansion. When they heard the Mad Mover come, they hid in the first unlocked room. Unfortunately, it was his bedroom. They went into the closet and the villain entered. He took off his mask, and the couple peeked out and recognized him as the original designer of Aurumville. He had spread the idea of the golden city, but no one listened. Jove had stolen the plan and was made mayor of his new city because of it. The man’s wife gasped, and the Mad Mover turned. He grew red and stormed toward the two. The man put his wife behind him and punched the villain in the gut. His wife grabbed a bottle of soda from a table and smashed it over the Mad Mover’s head. He crumpled, and the couple dragged him outside. They gave him some smelling salts and he came to. “Why did you do it, Marvin?” asked Jove, recognizing the man. Marvin spit at Jove. “You know why. You stole my idea for Aurumville,” Marvin said. The assembled people gasped. They were unaware. This was a new development for them. “Why don’t we make you mayor of Aurumville and you move this city that you made back to Aurumville, and you can be in charge of even more,” said one woman. Her fellow citizens responded affirmatively. Marvin agreed, and Jove was left flabbergasted. He settled for deputy mayor. In the meantime, Henry and George were promoted to city managers for their exceptional work and given a high salary. Life was good in the very rich community of Aurumville and they all live somewhat contentedly ever after. Flora & Fauna 255 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 A Tale of Clouds Isabelle Anderson - 7 th I stood at the top of the sheer, ocean-side cliff with my best friend, Morgan, with nothing but a small, wooden rail separating us from the roaring waves below. The view was beautiful from up there, with the bright orange sunset that could barely be seen from below due to the thick layer of fog that had been covering the beach for a couple of days now. I was taking pictures of the sunset when Morgan said from on the rail, “Hand me your camera, Sarah, the view is way better from over here.” “Okay,” I answered. “But be careful. It’s dangerous up there, and that’s a new camera.” “Don’t worry,” she said as I hesitantly began to walk over to the edge, trying to ignore my fear of heights. “I’ve been up here hundreds of times. Why would this one be any different?” I closed my eyes, handed her the camera, and began to slowly back away. I heard a few clicks of the camera going off and then Morgan’s loud, piercing scream. I opened my eyes and ran for the ledge, hoping against hope that this was all some big joke. But she was gone, lost to the tumbling waves below. Tears slid down my cheeks, their salty taste reminding me of Morgan’s favorite food, pretzels. I began to cry even more at her memory and I sank to my knees when I felt something small and box-shaped under me. I looked down and saw that it was my camera and realized that she must have dropped it to try to grab the rail. Through the layer of tears clouding my vision, I looked at the pictures she had taken and realized she was right all along. The view really was better from up on that rail. And I would never get to tell her. * * * Flora & Fauna 256 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 No one ever found her body, which was really not surprising to us. She was probably miles away by the time anyone started looking. But, even though I knew she was dead, I still didn’t believe it. I just could not seem to make myself believe that my best friend, the person I had spent practically my entire life with, was gone forever. And I knew that until she was found, there would always be this little part of me who still thought she was somehow alive. A few weeks later, about an hour after Morgan's memorial, I was sitting in my room, going through old pictures of me and Morgan, when I heard a knock on my window. Thinking that it was the annoying squirrel that had been bothering me for the past few days, I grabbed a shoe and hurled it at the window, hoping that it would go away. But then I heard more knocking and someone whispering my name. Since it obviously wasn’t the squirrel, I finally looked up. I saw a girl that was around my age, dressed all in black with blue, black, and white hair that brought back so many memories. My eyes widened in shock as I realized who it was. It finally dawned on me why no one had found Morgan’s cold, lifeless body floating around in the sea. After all, you can't find the body of someone who isn’t actually dead. Wondering how Morgan could have survived that fall, I opened up the window, letting her inside. “I’m so glad you’re okay," I said, giving her a huge hug. “But really, what happened to you?” I asked her, once I had shut the window behind her. “We thought you were dead. Why didn’t you tell anyone that you were alive? How are you alive, anyway?” I had many more questions, but I stopped talking when I saw the look on her face. She didn’t seem normal. She seemed slightly sad as she responded to my array of questions. “Sarah,” she said her voice barely audible. “I honestly don’t know what happened to me. I remember falling and screaming and then I hit the layer of clouds and everything Flora & Fauna 257 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 was silent. I woke up a week later, locked in a burning car, miles away from where I had disappeared. Soon after I regained consciousness and found that I couldn’t breathe, I began to panic. I started yelling for help and pounding on the windows, but no one would come. The flames were getting closer and I knew that I had to do something. I hit the window as hard as I could to hopefully shatter it, but it didn’t work. I kept hitting the window, screaming as loud as I could until at last, it was gone. The window, along with the rest of the car, had somehow turned into a very thick fog, more of a cloud, really. I knew that somehow, I had done that, so I just stood up and ran, trying to get as far away from there as I could hoping that it was all some sick dream. But it wasn’t. It was real. “Sometime later that night, I ended up at a twenty-four hour diner. I ordered a burger and luckily I had money in my pocket from when we were at the beach the day I fell. I asked the waitress how far away I was from Santa Cruz, California. She told me she didn’t know where Santa Cruz was, but if it was in California, I wasn’t anywhere near it. She told me that I was in Boise, Idaho. I thanked her and made my way back here, taking the bus as far as I could afford and hitch-hiking and walking the rest of the way. “So, that is the short version of what happened to me. I still am not completely sure exactly what happened though. I want you to help me find out Sarah. Please?” she asked me once she had finished her story. I was surprised to say the least. And I was quite confused. “Of course I’ll help you Morgan,” I say, finally speaking. “But I need to know a few things first. How did the car just transform like that? Are you some kind of wizard now?” “Sarah, I told you,” she answered. “I don’t know, but I doubt I’m a wizard. I think that whatever is happening to me is happening because of that strange fog. Just think about it. We went to that cliff to see the sunset so many Flora & Fauna 258 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 times in our lives, but as soon as that fog came, I fell. I blacked out as soon as I hit the fog, and I somehow managed to turn a burning car into a cloud. Stuff like that isn’t normal and I know that it all happened because of that fog. So, will you help me find out how?” “Okay,” I answered, still unsure. “But, how are we going to figure this out? Where do we even start?” “I don’t know Sarah,” she replied. “I really don’t know.” * * * Morgan ended up spending the night at my house, for multiple reasons, but the main one was that she still hadn’t told her parents what had happened. I told her she should tell them, but she said that she didn’t want to give them false hope by telling them that she was still alive. I didn’t really know what she meant by that, but I was beginning to worry. The silly, fun Morgan that I knew was gone, replaced by this new, serious Morgan that only wanted answers. The next morning, Morgan and I were back at the cliff, trying to find out what happened to her. The strange fog was finally gone, and the sun was shining. I heard the rustling of leaves as a man stepped out of the shadows. He was dressed normally, in shorts and a tshirt, and he was holding a clipboard. “Morgan Brookes,” he said, turning to Morgan. “That’s me,” she answered, slightly baffled. “Why? Who are you?” “My name is not important. All that matters right now is my research. And you are an extremely important part of that. My team and I have been monitoring your behavior for the past few months and determined that you were the best subject for this test. Originally, we were trying to create an instant cure for the flu, but that did not work out. We were not really getting anywhere, but we still tried. One day, however, a huge storm came by our facility. We all hid Flora & Fauna 259 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 in the storm shelters and waited for it to pass. And when it did, we came out only to find that almost everything we had been working on for years was gone. All that was left was a computer with the data we had gathered, and a security camera showing footage of the storm. We watched the tape and saw what had happened to our most recent attempt. It was struck by lightning, causing it to heat so much, it evaporated. We were all quite devastated at the loss of this most promising potential cure, but we knew that, with some work, it could be replicated. I alerted the government with what had happened and they informed us that construction of a new building would begin immediately and until it was finished, we could stay in the storm shelters. Within the next few days, we discovered something else strange. Some trees that were in the ground the day before, were starting to disappear and we had no explanation for it. I sent someone to investigate, but after he was out there for an hour, he seemed to just vanish. He still has not been found. “After this, we concluded that something strange was happening. We figured that the vapor from the potential cure must have floated into the cloud layer and was having crazy effects on the environment. I was told to stop researching the flu since we were not getting anywhere. I was told instead to research into this strange occurrence. And when we did, my team found incredible results. It was like in a science fiction novel, only it was real. We had changed the effects of the vapor so that, instead of turning something into clouds, it gave people that were exposed to it the ability to turn something into a thick, cloudy fog. We were then told to put together a special group of people. They were all to be chosen, monitored, tested, and, if they passed, given these abilities. We were to keep close records of their fears and their weaknesses. We would then use those to create a special test to see how they operated under Flora & Fauna 260 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 pressure. If they passed, they would become a new branch of the police force, only to be called upon when needed. “You were put into a challenging situation to see if you could and would survive. And you did. You have passed the test and made it back safely. So now comes the hard part of this. We want you to join us, but you will have to be gone for a long time. Will you do this?" “I don’t know,” said Morgan, trying to decide what to do. She tapped her foot like she always does when she is nervous. “This is a lot to take in all at once. Can I have a few more days to decide?” “Take all the time you need,” he said, handing her a business card. “Call us when you have an answer.” Then he stepped back behind the trees and we heard his footsteps get farther away until he was gone. Morgan was still trying to decide if she should join him or not. She really wanted to help, but she also didn’t want to have to leave again. I could see that she was very frustrated, as her hands were clenched on the rail that we were both leaning against. “I still find it hard to believe that this is where it all started,” I said, turning to Morgan. “I can’t either. I also just can't believe that they are making me choose between the fate of the world and my family. Nobody should have to make that decision,” she said, starting to get angry. I could sense that something bad was about to happen. “They could have killed me and what would they have accomplished? How could they do that?" Dark clouds were beginning to form around her, casting an eerie shadow across us. “What right have they to…” but her words were cut off by our screams as the rail was turned into a small cloud and we both went tumbling forward into the ocean below. “I’m sorry, Sarah, for everything,” I heard her say, just before we hit the waves. I opened my mouth to respond, but I never got the chance. The last thing I remember was Flora & Fauna 261 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 hitting the waves, then darkness as I slipped, slowly and painlessly, into the confines of death. Bradley Peterson - 7 th The Mark of the Ocean Karthy Sajeev - 7 th Maria sighed as she looked out onto the open sea. It had been five years now, since Hurricane Rhea hit the small town of Lendel. So much had changed since then. Maria had only been 12 when the hurricane hit Lendel and her sister, Katrina, was 15. The two sisters were orphans; their parents had drowned in another storm that had happened many years ago. The town of Lendel was located on Delos, an isolated island in the middle of the Pacific Ocean. The city had tried to call for help when Hurricane Rhea hit, but no one had come to their aid. As the waves became bigger and bigger, the people became panicked, rushed into their homes and bolted the doors. No one came out, and so no one but Maria saw what was going on outside. Flora & Fauna 262 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Hurricane Rhea had changed Lendel a lot. That day, the waves grew so large they threatened to engulf the whole island—Lendel, Maria and all. Maria, meanwhile, had noticed something strange about the waves. Though the sky was gray and cloudy, the water had the faintest shimmer to it. She braced herself for the smash of water but it never came. Directly above her, the gigantic wave had frozen for a second into a shimmering blue mass and then collapsed with ease into calm waves. The whole island began to slowly sink into the ocean, and it seemed like Lendel would be gone forever. Trees, houses and all of the people were submerged beneath the ocean. Everyone began to thrash and struggle, as an infinite force pulled them down, down, down, until they realized that they could breathe underwater. Around their heads grew bubbles that enabled them to talk and breathe underwater. The people were released from the powerful force pulling them deep down to the ocean floor, and, to their great amazement, saw their own city of Lendel surrounding them. It was Lendel, but made of ocean material. Houses and buildings had transformed into different colored sandcastles and the trees and flowers were replaced by colorful coral and lush, green seaweed. But the people were so busy exploring their underwater world that they didn’t notice the changes forming on themselves. Maria saw two blue circles on everyone’s palms, which slowly grew into intricate patterns across their fingers. To find out what this meant, she tried rubbing her hands together and putting them in the light but nothing happened at all. Grumbling with frustration, she swam up to the surface of the water to see if anything was going on outside, when….Thunk! Maria banged her head into a clear barrier that now separated the ocean world from the world above. “Ow!” she thought, rubbing her head. “Where did this come from?” Flora & Fauna 263 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Looking at the barrier, she saw holes where her hands had touched the water. In an instant, Maria realized what had happened. She eagerly swam back to the others and yelled as loudly as she possibly could, “Everyone, STOP! I need you all to follow me to the surface of the ocean.” The people, though they were surprised, followed Maria. “Now, I need you all to place your hands on this barrier here,” said Maria. As each person put their palms on the barrier, the blue marks on their hands quickly began to burn through the barrier until there was just enough space for them to crawl out. Once they were out of the water, the people found out that they had acquired another special ability, the ability to walk on water. Though their hands felt water, their feet touched a solid barrier. And to get back inside their underwater world, all they had to do was touch the barrier with their hands again. And though the people had survived the hurricane, their troubles were far from over. The people of Lendel were not the first to experience this type of miracle. Others had achieved powers through a chain of these strange tsunamis and hurricanes all over the world. But some of these powerful people used their powers to steal secrets of magic from other worlds, and the world of Lendel was now one of them. The invaders came from other islands all over the world. Each group of people was different; some had superhuman strength and others could turn invisible at their wish or transform into different shapes. The people of Vordor had experienced a terrifying earthquake only two years before, and, as a result, were granted the power of invisibility and could simply disappear with a snap of their fingers. Ten years prior Vordor’s earthquake, a snowstorm had attacked a small town called Schist. But the Schistans now were able to morph into anything they wanted if they Flora & Fauna 264 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 closed their eyes and imagined that form. And hardly twenty years ago, a sudden fire appeared at Estria. Just as the flames enveloped the village, rain clouds showered upon it and washed the flames away. Because of this “double miracle,” the Estrians got a rare ability, superhuman strength, which enabled them to smash the largest of boulders and rocks and even pick up a mountain! But even though these tribes could defeat the people of Lendel in battle on land, they could not figure out the secret of their powers nor could they figure out how to get through the barrier. Though Maria knew that no one could figure out how to control the powers of the people of Lendel, she feared that they would be captured instead. So Maria started to study the content of the magical barrier between the underwater world and the world above the surface. She found that the barrier was made of a mixture of the shimmering water she had seen long ago and a special plant called the featherfoil plant. Maria found both of these ingredients on the ocean floor. She pleaded to everyone to help her build up a thicker barrier against these invaders. One man asked, “Why do we need to build this barrier anyways? The invaders cannot steal our magic so they are really no threat to us.” Maria answered, “If we don’t build ourselves protection from these evil people, they may capture and torture us for our powers.” Her childhood friend, Sasha, spoke up, “Honestly, I don’t think we stand a chance against these guys. I mean, look at them! Compared to them, our powers mean hardly anything.” The mayor of the village, who, up until now, had been so surprised and curious at the strange happenings to even speak, supported Sasha. He said, “Maria, I understand what you are saying but I agree with Sasha. How can we escape Flora & Fauna 265 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 or even fight back before they sneak upon us or smash us to bits? The only thing we can do now is surrender.” Maria started to become worried for she could see the effect of the mayor’s words upon the people. But before she could say anything, her sister, Katrina, cried, “Listen, everyone! I agree with Maria. Our abilities underwater surpass all the others, for their powers only work on land. And we need to think ahead. If we build a barrier, we won’t have to fight these invaders at all. And if we work together, we can do it!” And so each and every person was assigned a task in building the barrier. Some were sent to collect the special water and bunches of the featherfoil plant. Others helped Maria make the mixture and mark the boundaries of the barrier. And everyone else helped make the barrier using the special mixture. It took days to complete the strenuous task of making a huge barrier that surrounded the underwater world of the people of Lendel, but at last it was completed. The people rejoiced as they watched the confused invaders smash into an invisible wall when they tried to attack the people of Lendel. And so Lendel was forever protected after the making of the magical barrier. Alexei Galanga - 7 Flora & Fauna th 266 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The Crash Kahveh Zahiroleslam- 7 th July 28, 2015 Hello, my name is Siphiwe Aurier and this is the first of many journal entries. I am telling you the story of how I ended up in the Amazon, 5,500 miles away from home. I was born in the Ivory Coast but moved to France as a child. After finishing high school, I moved to England where I attended college and studied to become an ecologist. During the next 15 years, I worked overseas and went to Brazil many times. When I heard that gold was found in the Amazon, I dreaded to see the destruction that man would cause there. So I packed my bags and went to gather my colleagues for the trip. I first went to Cristian Bolanoas’ house, my roommate from college who was from Costa Rica and also an ecologist. After that we went together to see my advisor Shaun Tsakiris. We all booked first-class tickets to Rio and headed to the airport. When we boarded, the flight attendant told us that it would be an eleven hour flight to Rio. I automatically fell asleep. 10 HOURS LATER……. I woke up and saw that it was 8:00 in the evening, an hour left for our flight. Suddenly our plane lurched and the seatbelt sign blinked on. The captain tried calmly to tell us that one of our engines had gone out. While trying to land the plane, the captain hit his head on the controls and the plane crashed. I must have lost consciousness, I woke up with a bruised head, tried to focus my eyes and take a look around. The sun blared in my face and my vision focused in. I had been thrown out of the airplane still strapped to my seat. Suddenly, I saw that I was next to Cristian, who must have fainted because I could not wake him, so I got up and started looking for Shaun and the others. When it Flora & Fauna 267 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 became too dark, I had to stop my search and navigate my way back to Cristian. I saw that he was finally awake, so we got some emergency supplies from the plane and had a meal of nuts and pretzels with water. The next day I woke up drenched in sweat. I told Cristian to look for some supplies and my backpack with the survival kit and food. I left to find Shaun and half an hour later I found him sleeping under a leaf, very hot and drenched in sweat. When we went back we saw that Cristian had found everything, including the emergency ax of the plane and a GPS. He told us that we were the only survivors of the crash. When I looked at my multitasking watch, it showed 101 degrees Fahrenheit!! Judging from our supplies and the weather factor, I knew that we wouldn’t last more than a week. July 29, 2015 Today we talked about our supplies and the weather. Cristian told us we were 250 miles from human inhabitants. The closest village was to the north. We set off and walked nonstop for three hours. Soon, I realized that we would need to use our shirts to protect ourselves from the sun and we tied our shirts like turbans to shade our eyes. From our first day we knew that the sun would kill us. As we walked we tended to imitate the movement of the animals around, and walked under the shade of the trees. Still, the heat was unbearable and the shade did not seem to shelter us. That night, we made a huge fire, not for its heat, but to protect ourselves from animals and to make sure the jaguars, whose growls we could hear from far away, would not come near us. We also took turns to sleep in two hour shifts and to keep watch over the others. Flora & Fauna 268 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 July 30, 2015 This morning, during an early walk around the premises, I found a bird’s nest that had fallen onto the ground. There were two intact eggs inside! For breakfast, we cooked the eggs over our fire with Shaun’s portable frying pan. Then we continued on our journey towards the edge of the Amazon River. After a long hour of trudging through the marshland we reached the magnificent Amazon. It was quite a sight, to be near the largest river in the world, the width alone spanning over a mile! Cristian told us that we needed to sail downstream for about 100 miles. Judging that there was still 15 hours of daylight we decided to make a raft today and set sail tomorrow. Luckily, nearby we found several old trees that had fallen onto the forest floor. I used our ax and began cutting pieces, which Cristian and Shaun used to create a bottom for our raft. I also helped them make paddles with other pieces of the tree. The forest was abundant with material that we needed to secure our raft, including thick tall grass that we used to tie the logs together. We used sharp, long pieces of wood chips to make spears, and tied sharp stones to their tips, securing them with the grass. We knew that we always needed to be on our guard because of the piranhas and other fish. We made the raft very wide judging that we would have more of a chance of batting piranhas if they had a longer distance to cover. After all of this with the remaining wood we made a bench and a mast. We took the cloth we had brought from the plane, from extra clothes, and made a sail by tying them together. As I was making the sail I used the last of our cloth to wipe the sweat off my brow. Gathering all of our water, we saw that we had enough for 2 days, if sharing evenly. Flora & Fauna 269 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 July 31, 2015 Today we woke up early, not caring about breakfast. We slowly put the raft on the river. I was situated up front, and Cristian and Shaun were in the back. We rowed as fast as we could for an hour. I soon saw that a bit of water was leaking in, so we rowed to shore and we tightened the logs together. This little break gave us enough energy to row fast for another hour. As we were rowing I saw my two friends jumping at the sounds of macaws and monkeys in the rainforest. Shaun decided that we should slow down to hydrate and regain energy. I saw that Shaun looked a bit pale and his skin looked dry. We slowed down, splashed our faces with water from the river and took small sips of our water. As we set out again, I noticed we were not moving and realized the raft was stuck on something. I gestured to Shaun who came forward to help get us out of the banks. I didn’t look behind me as I heard the water splash because I thought Cristian was cooling off and splashing water on his face, but when we looked back, Cristian was no where to be found. We rushed to the edge of the raft and looked overboard. I saw bubbles and suddenly Cristian burst out of the river bloodied with piranhas attached all over his body. He started to thrash and before we had time to react and reach for him, he lay motionless and sank to the bottom with piranhas frantically at him. I was in shock. Shaun fell back onto the raft and held his head in his hands. There was no time for emotions; we had to keep going. Shaken by our friend’s death, we slowly and grimly carried on. At the end of the river we saw a dreaded sight……. A WATERFALL!!! Shaun and I hurriedly got rid of everything except our water and two pieces of bread. We slowly paddled towards the waterfall and we plunged down. The impact of the water under my shoes, as I hit the surface, was so strong I thought my feet would break. After what seemed like an eternity, I surfaced and saw Shaun Flora & Fauna 270 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 next to the raft. After we swam to shore we flipped the boat and continued down. Shaun told me that there were only three miles left by water and five more by land after the river started to flow the other way. I couldn’t believe that we were so close to our goal. We paddled downriver, and eventually jumped out of the boat. I took a piece of the sail as a reminder if I got out alive. As we were walking Shaun and I had to take off our shirts. I noticed that the sticky humidity slowed us from taking our shirts off because we were very sweaty. The two of us stopped for the night and had our pieces of stale and wet bread with some water. Neither of us had the energy to talk, or maybe we had nothing to talk about, except the death of our friend Cristian Bolanoas that was the only thing on our mind. In the middle of dinner Shaun said he was tired and he immediately went to sleep. August 1, 2015 Today I woke up and found that Shaun lay motionless next to me. I knew he was exhausted, but I couldn’t wake him. I shook him and slapped him at first, and then an eerie feeling came over me. Taking his pulse only confirmed my worst suspicion. Shaun Tsakiris had died of dehydration. I searched through my medical knowledge and remembered the symptoms: dizziness, dry skin, lethargy, dry throat, and sleepiness. I had seen it happening before my eyes, but I didn’t think it would be possible. I couldn’t believe it. As I took a moment to acknowledge my departed friends, I had to suppress my feelings deep down and focus on survival. I dug a shallow hole with my bare hands and placed Shaun’s lifeless body in it, covering him with leaves and dirt. Then I walked the last five miles, alone, to the village. At the first sight of civilization, I cried, tears of joy and tears of sorrow. I was Flora & Fauna 271 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 happy to be found and rescued, but I had also changed as if a lifetime had passed, I felt like an old man. Two days later, I was airlifted to Rio and returned home. This is the end of my story, a 25-year old ecologist from Cote D’Ivoire. I survived five days and lost two friends in the Amazon. This is my story. Angel Diaz - 7 th Rushyl Kapila - 7 Flora & Fauna th 272 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The London Incident Mikita Piarvou - 7 th It was a fresh, busy, sunny morning in the city of London. John had just been awakened by a small trembling in his apartment and was getting ready to grab his morning coffee and newspaper at his favorite morning shop, “House of Coffee.” He departed, his black bowler hat on his head and his white suit jacket on his shoulders. He greeted many people on the way, for he had lived in London for nearly twenty years and therefore knew many people. On his way, he noticed a small crack in the sidewalk that John knew had not been there the day before. John continued, thinking that sidewalks always needed fixing, but he did not see that the crack was growing larger every second, and the ground was vibrating ever so slightly. When John reached the coffee shop, he asked if the cashier, a friend of his, had noticed anything strange that morning. “I didn't see anything too strange on the way to work, but I wasn't really paying attention. What I did feel were tremblings last night, though they were too weak to be of great significance.” Another person had heard the comment and spoke. “I saw a strange purple worm on the way that crawled into a small crack when it realized I was watching closely.” John and the cashier both pondered this a moment and nodded. Suddenly, the shop lurched. Car alarms went off, and a few people were seen staggering past the doors. Screams rang out into the air. John ran outside to investigate, and saw that a large crack had formed in the middle of the street where he had seen the cracked sidewalk. The streets began to shake aggressively, and John was thrown off balance. People were panicking, and some were running down the Flora & Fauna 273 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 street for help. A nearby police car had stopped and the officer seemed to be calling for emergency vehicles. A large part of the street caved in, and an empty, red jeep fell with the asphalt below it, into the unknown. The small rift was giving off an odd purple glow, and people started to evacuate. More police forces rushed to the scene, and people were funneling out of buildings and leaving the area. A purplish liquid was slowly coming out of the expanding hole and solidifying upon contact with the asphalt. Then, two shapes emerged from the space, seemingly being formed by the glowing goo. John slowly backed away, and rightly so, for, as he moved, the street caved in more and the space he had been standing in a minute ago, disappeared. One of the creatures roared menacingly, and made to attack the policemen who were standing dangerously close to the rift now that it had expanded a bit. John did not wait to see the outcome of the encounter. He was already running when the creatures had started moving, and winced when he heard the crunch of one of the law enforcement vehicles as it was destroyed. A bolt of pure energy flashed a few meters away from John and vaporized a lamp post. John ran harder than ever and was only slightly comforted when he heard the whirring of helicopter blades in the distance. From what he had just seen done to the lamp post, he knew the military had no chance. John ran on and on until he reached his friend's apartment. His friend was out of town for the month and had given John a copy of his key so that his plants could be watered. John unlocked the door and went inside. He fell onto the bed and lay there for a moment to rest. The exhausted man fell asleep for a few hours. When he was awakened by a trembling, John saw it was getting dark. He pulled the curtains open a few centimeters and saw that the military had the place surrounded. They were sending Flora & Fauna 274 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 people into buildings to clear them, and maybe pick up a few people that could help fight the alien creatures. The soldier in John's building came to his door and opened it. “Hello, sir. The military has asked that London be evacuated of all citizens not capable of fighting. Will you be able to join us to defend Great Britain?” “I would happily help, but I have never held a we-” “That is great! Now, may you please step outside this building and join the forces waiting below? The captain will brief you and the others.” John descended from the fourteenth floor and joined the soldiers standing outside. He could easily tell apart the soldiers from the people that decided to help. The land shuddered twice more as John stepped up to the group of civilians. The ground shook for another minute before stopping and became still again. The professional soldiers seemed not to be bothered by the 'minor' earthquake and kept formation while the civilians struggled to keep their balance and some even fell over. The captain presented himself to everyone in a fine manner. “We hopefully all know what has happened this horrible day, but just in case, I will fill you in. There was an earthquake that tore a deep trench from Trafalgar Square to Parliament Square, which is approximately a 765 meter rift that follows Whitehall street. An odd liquid came out, and out of this liquid strange life forms grew. These life forms have taken the Parliament building, and have created the source of radiation we are seeing on our scanners. We theorize that this source is the location of their nest.” All the civilians looked towards the famous clock tower, which housed Big Ben, and were surprised to see that a purple vine had entwined itself around the tower. “Do any of you want to volunteer to sacrifice their lives for the sake of Britain and perhaps the whole world?” asked the captain. Flora & Fauna 275 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 A citizen wearing an Arsenal shirt raised his hand. “I volunteer to sacrifice myself for Great Britain.” Within ten minutes, everyone was ready to go. The men marched and agreed that the soldiers would guard the entrance to Parliament. The troops suffered from two more earthquakes, one of which sent even the soldiers to the ground with its shaking. The streets on the way to their goal were strangely vacant, and everyone was mentally ready. They saw their first object of interest inside the gates of the walls, which had been blown open. It was what seemed to be a “dead” one, if you could really call it dead. The incongruous, non-human carcass was lying in a large puddle of the purple goo, but its body parts were twitching as if the creature was a dying spider whose legs were restless. The force shuddered at the sight, and hurried toward the doors. They barged in and immediately were contacted with bursts of energy, as the hidden aliens were expecting them. The aliens pumped out of their particle cannons when the group ran inside the remains of the building. John and another volunteer ran to the stairs because he saw that the tower had emerged in the center of the building. John supposed it to be the nest, because of a door in the side of it and the fact that it was covered in a purple web that emerged from the earthquake's devastation. The two ran up, encountering nothing. They turned a corner and ducked, one of the creatures passed by. John reached the tower, but the carrier had tripped and must have hit his head on something, for he lay unmoving. He grabbed the object he needed to calm the radiation and placed it on a large blue egg, but John knew it would take some time to work. A creature rounded the bend, and, seeing John, roared. It started to rush toward him. It was closing the distance quickly. John was sweating with nervousness. He started Flora & Fauna 276 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 thinking that the calmer was not working. The creature started to pounce... And then it happened. John heard a whir, and everything disappeared. The creature and tower were gone. John had succeeded. He looked down at the first floor through the hole the tower had left in its wake and was happy to see the relieved troops. John sat down in a comfortable spot and closed his eyes. John awoke. He was in his apartment room. John was confused. Was I dreaming? What is going on? John realized he had been dreaming. He thought he had saved Britain. John was relieved to find that nothing had happened. As he pulled on his hat and coat and set off for his morning coffee at “House of Coffee,” he felt a trembling. The Day I Got Struck by Lightning Charlie Trippel - 7 th My name is Coleman. I am fifteen years old, have blue eyes and blond hair. I am also about five feet and seven inches tall. I never asked to get my powers, but then again, I don’t think that I could have avoided getting them in the first place. It all started on Friday, April 26, 2014. That day is also my birthday, so, what a coincidence. It was quite a peaceful morning and this was the first sound that I heard. Beep! Beep! Beep! Beep! Beep! *Click* “Uuuuuggggghhhh” It was Friday, finally, and it was my birthday. I had turned fifteen at 1:30 in the morning. I dragged myself out of bed and put on my favorite t-shirt and jeans and headed downstairs. It was raining, on my birthday, yay. As I entered the kitchen, I nearly had a heart attack, when my little sister, Emm; my mother, Helen; and my father, Flora & Fauna 277 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Christian all screamed aloud, “HAPPY BIRTHDAY COLEMAN!!!!” There were balloons tied to everything, even my old lazy dog Rocky, who was wearing a party hat too. I inhaled that familiar smell… waffles. “Wow guys this is amazing, thank you so much for making waffles. I guess you know me too well.” Emma squealed, ran at me and gave me a huge hug. “Look at all the presents we got you, Coleman!” Somehow I hadn’t even seen the table with the presents on it. “I wish I could open them all right now, but if I don’t hurry up and get to school I’ll be late for class.” Emma looked kind of sad, so I said, “But maybe just one,” and she lit up again and handed me one. I opened it and uncovered a beautiful watch that Emma had bought me. It was silver, or at least it looked like it, and super shiny and all that fun stuff. “Wow, Emma, this is an incredible gift, thank you so much.” Realizing the time, I had to scarf down my waffle, get my bike and go, but before leaving my home, I said, “Hey, Dad, don’t forget that I’m going to Brian’s house after school. He wanted to have a little party for me.” “No problem, buddy, but hey, be home before nine.” “Alright dad, bye guys!” “Bye, Coleman!” said Emma. I got on my bike and biked as fast as I could to school. When I got there, the bell rang, which meant that I had five minutes to get ready for my biology class. I ran into the room and began studying at the last minute for my test, even though I already felt pretty good about it. I took the test and turned it in with a smile on my face. The bell rang again. I went outside to look for Brian when I walked right into him. “Hey birthday boy! Dude, dude, dude what did you get?” I held up my wrist and showed him the watch. “Nice. Which one?” Flora & Fauna 278 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “Emma.” “Nice, dude. Are you ready to drink more coke than you have ever had in your life tonight?” “You bet.” I spent the rest of my day awaiting Brian’s party. When school finally got out, Brian and I got on our bikes and rode to his house. Every time I pedaled, it felt like the rain got harder. “So,” I asked, “who’s going to be at the party?” “Oh, just some friends of mine.” Fantastic. Knowing Brian, “some friends of mine” meant people that I don’t even know. I’m guessing that he knew a guy who knew a guy who knew a guy that could set up an awesome party. We got to his house and we could hear the music from a block away. He looked at me with that dopey grin of his and took out a microphone from his backpack and opened the door. Everyone was partying like there was no tomorrow. Brian screamed into the microphone, “EVERYONE STOP THIS PARTY AT ONCE.” Everyone stopped partying and I saw a DJ in his living room. I stared with my jaw dropped at Brian and looked from him to the DJ and back. He let out a chuckle and he spoke into the mic again, “Ok, start partying again.” The DJ picked up his mic and said, “Happy birthday Coleman.” Then everyone in the house screamed, “HAPPY BIRTHDAY COLEMAN.” I went into the house and everyone kept partying. There were seven whole two-liter bottles of coke lined up right next to the DJ. I stared at them and the DJ said, “Don’t think, just chug.” I smiled at him and turned around at the crowd who was staring at me. “Do you guys want me to chug this?” I asked “YES!” “Alright.” I popped off the cap and put it up to my lips and drank. The crowd went from quiet to loud saying, “chug, chug, chug, chug.” I finished the bottle and threw it Flora & Fauna 279 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 down on the ground. The crowd screamed out, “YEAH!” and, “WOO!” I laughed and got on the table and they got so close to me that it felt like they were breathing on my shoes. I jumped off the table and they caught me and lifted me around the room. Time really flew by that night and before I knew it, It was 8:45. I had to go. “Alright people, it’s been nice getting to know all of you and chugging seven bottles of coke, but I gotta go now. My family is expecting me soon. But before I go I would like you to all say a big thank you to Brian, my best friend, and the DJ in the back.” The people said thanks and bye to me. The DJ and I did a bro hug. And then that was it. I said thanks to Brian and stepped outside. It was raining super hard and before a minute had passed, I was drenched in rain and it was dripping down my nose. I looked up and it felt as if someone was pouring a never ending bucket of water on me. I looked at Brian and the both of us just shrugged. I got on my bike and headed home. I heard rumbling and I said to myself, “Please don’t get killed. Please don’t get killed.” The rumbling got louder and louder. All of a sudden everything turned harshly bright, and it felt like my back exploded. I woke up with a jolt and my alarm clock went off again. Beep! Beep! Beep! Beep! Beep! “Uuuugggghhh”. But my clock was already off. That was weird; I didn’t remember even touching it. In fact, I couldn’t remember much of anything after leaving the party, like how I got home even. Flora & Fauna 280 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 I got up and went downstairs to get some breakfast, possibly a smoothie, if I was lucky. My presents were still at the table. Dad was watching TV, listening to a commercial about lights that you clap twice and say clap on or clap off and they turned on and off. Mom saw me and said, “Good morning sweetie, I made you some breakfast.” Mom handed me a plate of delicious looking bacon and eggs, and a smoothie. I smiled, and said thanks as I ate my delicious breakfast. “Hey Mom, last night I had a crazy dream about being struck by lightning.” “Must have hurt. In the dream of course. You came home with a strange look on your face and said that you were feeling kind of out of it.” “That’s weird, I don’t remember saying that.” “Like I said, you were feeling kind of out of it.” “Yeah, I guess.” Dad’s program came back on and he was watching the weather channel. It was almost like I could feel the electricity in the TV. It gave me a tingly feeling and all of a sudden, the power went out, all over the city. I didn’t know how I knew that the whole city had shut down, but it just felt true. I spent the rest of the weekend incredibly confused. On Monday I headed out the door and started my way to school. I couldn’t help but feel like it had something to do with me, as if maybe I had something to do with the power outage. My bike hit a rock and I fell over, expecting pain, but I was hovering in mid-air and electricity was radiating off me. I began to realize what happened last night; that was no ordinary lightning bolt that hit me. I ditched my bike and flew the rest of the way to school. When I landed, the power was still out so I clapped my hands twice and said, “Clap on?” and the whole city got its power back. I got kind of giddy and the power shut down again. Now people were getting to school. I didn’t know what to do so I went to find Brian. I finally found him and told him everything because I could trust him. At Flora & Fauna 281 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 first he didn’t believe me so I put my hands about two inches away from each other and made electricity pulse between my hands and shoot sparks out of my fingers. The look on his face told me that he now believed me. I showed him that I could fly and use machines to do my bidding. He was totally jealous. So we then headed to biology class and our teacher, Mr. Schmidtt assigned us a project on any part of the human body. I was paired with Miranda, a girl who sits next to me in biology. We decided to make a video about how the mind’s reaction to certain circumstances. A week later, our presentation was due. I decided to get some exercise, so I took my bike to school. I almost got hit by a car but it veered out of my way at the last second and hit the telephone pole behind me. I braced for the impact and, when I looked up, apparently I had shielded myself with my powers. I made sure the driver was alright, called 911, and continued to school. When I got there, the power was out and everything was dark. Miranda and I were first to present, but the power was out so Miranda began to say that we couldn’t go because we did a video, but I said clap on and clapped my hands twice and the school lit up. Everyone stared at me and I just asked, “What?” pretending that I knew nothing, like a coincidental joke Miranda put in the CD and it started playing, but then shut off again because the power went out again. Starting to get annoyed at the power outages, I said, “Clap on,” and clapped my hands twice. Miranda looked at me and asked, “Coleman are you doing this?” pointing to the lights. The video resumed and then the power cut out again about three minutes later, shutting the TV off. “CLAP ON!” I shouted and clapped my hands twice and the video played on, but no one was watching, not even Mr. Schmidtt. The TV shut off again and I got so angry that I threw an electric bolt at the TV and it blew up. The room Flora & Fauna 282 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 was silent and everyone was staring right at me. I didn’t know what to do so I just said, “Sorry, I don’t know what’s happening to me anymore.” I flew out of the building and went up because I didn’t know what else to do. When school got out I found Brian and he asked me, “WHAT THE HECK WAS THAT BACK THERE?!?!?” “I don’t know but it’s getting hard to control my power.” “Look man, I think its best that you just go home and forget about all of this. Actually I think its best that everyone forgets about this.” “Yeah you’re probably right.” So I flew home and saw Emma doing her homework at the table. I went in and she saw me and ran into my arms and gave me a huge hug. “How was your day Coleman? How was your project?” “Both despicable. What about you?” “School was super weird today. People were spreading rumors that you were some sort of electric freak.” “Did you believe them?” “Of course not.” “Well, Emma I’m just going to put those rumors to rest. I’m the same Coleman, and I still love you, Mom, and Dad. I will do everything in my power to protect you. But those rumors are true. I do have powers and they do give me electric capabilities. It is getting hard to control them but I will never harm anyone unless they put my friends and family into fatal danger.” Emma just burst into tears and hugged me. I hugged her back. When Mom and Dad came home, I gave them the news too. They were shocked but their expression softened and Dad told me, “With great power comes great responsibility Coleman, always know this.” Rocky decided to stop being lazy and got up and licked my hand. After dinner, I headed upstairs and Rocky followed me and jumped up on my bed and plopped himself down there. I Flora & Fauna 283 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 brushed my teeth and got ready for bed. I shut off my lights just by thinking it. But that night I didn’t sleep, I couldn’t. Not only was Rocky so fat that he took up half the bed space, I kept on thinking about how scared everyone was when I blew up the TV. I don’t blame them, but I felt bad. The next morning I ate breakfast and got to school and before class started, I made everyone’s phone buzz, so they took their phones out and answered the call. My face appeared on all their screens and I sincerely apologized for yesterday’s event. Everyone was still in shock of what happened so I spent the rest of the day feeling awkward and having people staring at me. I flew home and went right to my room. Rocky was still on my bed and when he saw me, the old dog wagged his tail. I flopped down on my bed, with my face down in my pillow. I guess I didn’t have dinner that night. I just turned off the lights and then that dreaded noise: Beep! Beep! Beep! Beep! Beep! Beeoouwp. That was weird, I never heard my clock make that sound before. I sat up and looked around. Everything was floating, even Rocky and I thought that we needed a crane to move him around. My alarm clock was floating in the middle of the room with its plug floating with it. I focused my mind and set everything down. I went to school and when I finally made it there, I heard a scream. I ran down the hallways until I finally found out what was wrong. Miranda was trembling reaching into her pockets and giving her wallet and phone to some guy . . . . who was holding her at gunpoint. Miranda started crying and I realized that she was being robbed. “Hey! You don’t want to do that.” The robber looked and laughed at me. He switched the gun to me. “Ok, now you really don’t want to do that,” I said with a grin. Flora & Fauna 284 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “I don’t have time for this!” he said and pulled the trigger. Miranda screamed. “Oh, no! Dude, you totally missed me.” People had started to gather in the hallway just watching what was happening. I took a step closer and he fired twice. “Dude, you seriously have to work on your aim.” He emptied the clip and once again I made them all miss me and hover behind me. I brought them in front of me so he could see his failure and his face went pale. He took out another clip, reloaded and fired seven bullets at me but for the last one he pointed the gun at Miranda. “Alright, either you stop pointing that gun at her and I take care of you right now, or I can just take care of you right now.” He laughed and was about to pull the trigger but I locked the safety with my powers so it wouldn’t fire. He got confused, so I started speaking. “Well, now you’ve made me a little angry and I haven’t had a smoothie yet today which makes it worse for you. The only way to take care of people like you is by brute force, apparently.” I pulled out my finger gun and pointed it at him. “Vvvvvvvvvvvvvvvv pow.” The electricity bolt hit him square in the chest and knocked him back about three yards and knocked him unconscious. I raised my fingers to my head and made the phone symbol with my hand, and called 911. “Hi, yes, I have someone here who has been caught trying to rob a student,” and hung up. Everyone was silent and then started cracking up and cheering. When the cheering died down I said, “Well then, carry on with your regularly scheduled program.” The rest of the day went pretty well. When I got home, dad was watching the news and apparently someone recorded my “heroism”, as the news anchor had called it. Dad and Emma looked from me to the TV and back with jaws dropped. I just smiled and went upstairs to my room to Flora & Fauna 285 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 think about what happened today. The rest of my life was pretty easy going after that. I only used my powers if I had to, or if a little kid asked me to do a short electricity shock between my fingers. Now I have a loving wife and a son and a daughter and they have my genes so they have powers too and I told them the same thing that my father told me when I was fifteen. With great power comes great responsibility. A New World Clarys Paragas- 7 th Lani was a twelve year old girl living with her aunt and uncle in Lihue, Kauai, HI. Her parents had died in a car crash when she was four years old. Ever since then, she had lived with her aunt and uncle. She had no siblings and no other relatives on the island. Lani was homeschooled because she couldn’t keep up with her class. Her aunt taught her at home and her uncle worked six days a week. Lani and her family lived close to the ocean in a small house with one bedroom, a bathroom and a small kitchen with a porch. Every morning, Lani walked along the beach with her bare feet sinking into the wet sand. One day, she dipped her feet into the cold ocean water to wake herself up. She saw dozens of fish swimming around her as the tide began to rise. Her aunt called her in for breakfast a couple minutes later. Lani turned around as she heard her name, the wind blowing her long brown hair out of her face. The sun had already risen and it reflected off the blue water. Lani took one last glimpse of the ocean before she went inside. “Lani,” her aunt said as she poured guava juice into a plastic cup. “Yes, auntie?” Lani replied as she cleaned her feet on the porch with a towel. Flora & Fauna 286 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “There will be a typhoon sometime this week so we need to go to the store to get some things.” “Okay.” After their conversation, Lani’s uncle walked in, dressed for work. They all sat down at the table and ate their breakfast. The left over ham from their previous dinner was warmed up and served with rice for their breakfast. They talked about what they were going to do tomorrow since it was going to be a Sunday and Lani’s uncle was off from work. After they talked, Lani went to help her aunt with the dishes and her uncle kissed them goodbye and headed out the door. After about fifteen minutes of cleaning the dishes, Lani and her aunt got ready to go shopping for supplies. Lani wore a white tank top, jean shorts and black flip flops since it was July and really hot. She tied up her hair into a ponytail and followed her aunt out the door. They walked to a nearby store and to get all the essentials. It was about a ten minute walk down the road to reach the store. The store was crowded because a lot of people knew that a typhoon was coming. After about an hour and a half of shopping, they got all they needed and headed back home. Lani quickly ran into the house, putting the groceries and supplies on the kitchen table and headed straight back out to the ocean. She let her feet sink into the sand and watched as the tides pushed the sand on top of her toes. She sat down in the water, allowing her clothes to get wet. She pulled a loose strand of hair behind her ear and listened to the waves crashing into each other. “Lani! Lunch time!” her aunt called as she walked onto the porch holding two plates with sandwiches on them. Lani acknowledged her and got up. She ran to her aunt. “Let me change first,” she said as her aunt put the plates on the small coffee table. Lani ran to the bathroom leaving a trail of water behind her. Her shorts stuck to her legs as she closed the door, Flora & Fauna 287 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 water dripping from the hem of her shirt and shorts. Lani changed into a new outfit and wrung out her wet clothes. On the porch, there were three stools surrounding the small coffee table. When she came to the porch she saw her uncle sitting in a stool because he had come home early from work. Lani ran to him and wrapped her arms around him as she said hello. Her aunt was in the kitchen making another sandwich. After they ate, they rested on the steps of the porch watching the waves and the sun’s light reflecting from the water. Together, they got up and began to walk along the beach, collecting seashells and pebbles that had washed up from the sea. They played tag and Lani tried to teach her aunt and uncle how to do a cartwheel. Finally, they went surfing for about two hours. Lani was taught how to surf by her uncle when she was eight years old. They splashed water at each other and had a great time. It was 3:47 p.m. and Lani, her aunt and her uncle saw grey clouds forming in the sky. It began to rain lightly, then it began to rain harder, big, fat, wet drops. Lani, her aunt and her uncle stopped and looked at each other as the rain hit their faces. The drops of rain dripped down their faces when they saw the lightning flashing in the distance. Raindrops fell hard onto their heads. “Everyone, get in the house!” Lani’s uncle yelled as her aunt pushed them lightly into the house. Lani, her aunt and her uncle had been through many typhoons, but not like the one they would soon encounter. Lani went straight to the bedroom as her aunt and uncle closed and locked all shutters of windows and doors and they met Lani in the bedrooms. They brought their landline, a battery powered radio, a flashlight, water and some food and huddled in a tight circle next to the bed. Lani could see outside the window that rain was pouring down and birds were flying away from the ocean, seeking cover under the trees. She knew this was going to Flora & Fauna 288 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 be a different kind of typhoon. Her aunt and uncle were hugging her from both sides and she looked into their eyes as a huge wave crashed onto their house. The floor began to flood and her uncle climbed out to the roof with Lani, her aunt following. Once Lani reached the roof, she helped her aunt get up. Her uncle stuck out his hand as she grabbed it with one hand and the other holding her aunts hand. She looked out to the ocean but could only see clouds and waves and rain. Lani then saw a huge wave. It was about ten feet tall and its shadow casted upon them. Lani’s heart dropped as her fear took over her body. She screamed, shielded her eyes with her arm and crouched down as the wave crashed onto them, knocking them unconscious. Lani woke up in an unfamiliar land. She was lying in the sand on a beach. But it wasn’t the beach she woke up to every morning. The sand was dark and rocky. The ocean wasn’t clear and full of fish like the beach she was used to. She stood up and turned around to see a never ending sight of palm trees and different plants. She looked to her right and left and couldn’t see anyone. Pausing in fear, she called out for her aunt and her uncle but no one came. Lani wiped the sand from her face and tried to shake the sand out of her hair, and began walking towards the jungle. A flock of birds from a nearby tree flew out, causing the leaves to rustle together. Lani pulled her wet hair back as she looked up and saw the leaves of the palm trees sway with the hot wind. She looked back down, facing the forest. She took a deep breath and entered, determined to find her way back home. Flora & Fauna 289 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Lani walked in and saw plants she had never seen before. Giant leaves and flowers surrounded the area with vines wrapped around tree trunks. She was amazed by the beauty and colors of the new forest. Purple, blue, white and pink flowers hung like curtains from the trees. The smell of rain and the scent of flowers filled the air. She kept walking, stepping over roots and plants as she did. As Lani walked, she heard a rustle in the leaves of a nearby bush. She quickly turned around to see a pair of eyes blink once and run off. Lani looked confused and followed them. “Stop! Stop! I’m lost and I need help!” she cried, careful not to trip while keeping an eye on the eyes that had vanished. As Lani followed them, she noticed that it was a human being. It ignored her and kept running. She followed it until it reached a bridge. The bridge was beautiful. It was made of tree roots and vines from Banyan trees. They wrapped around each other tight and created a strong bridge. It was about 300 feet long. It stretched across the canyon. Lani admired it for a while and the remembered she was chasing someone. She began chasing it. As she got a closer look, she noticed the being she was chasing was a girl in a deep purple dress with a bag slung around her shoulder. She had long, wavy black hair adorned with a flower behind her ear. Lani chased after her and crossed the bridge. She ran as fast as she could, trying not to lose the girl. Once she crossed the bridge, she saw the girl stop in front of a tall man. She began to talk to him and occasionally look back at Lani. Lani stopped and hid behind a tree and tried to hear their conversation. They spoke English, and so Lani could understand them. “I found the daughter,” the girl said to the man. Flora & Fauna 290 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The man nodded turning around and walked away, having the girl walk next to him. Lani followed them slowly, but stayed hidden. They sat around a grassy patch of land surrounded by huts. That was where important meetings were held. “Bring the girl so we may unite her with her family,” the tall man said as he and the girl sat down across from each other. “She was following me here. She must be close,” the girl replied looking around trying to see if she could find Lani. What? They know where my aunt and uncle are? I hope they’re okay. Lani thought. Lani slowly walked out of the bushes and approached the girl from behind. The man looked up with a confused face as he stood. The girl got up, looked at the man and then at Lani. “This is the girl I was telling you about, Dad,” the girl said as she pulled Lani’s wrist closer to her. “Uh. Hello. My name is Lani,” Lani said as she looked at the man. “Hi. I’m Kailani. I was the girl that was running away from you.” “Hello, Lani. I am Chief Akamai. We know where your parents are,” but he was interrupted by Lani. “They aren’t my parents. My parents died. They are my aunt and uncle.” “Oh. I’m sorry. Your aunt and uncle are with the other tribe and they are safe.” “Great! So can you take me there?” “It’s not that easy, Lani,” Kailani said as she had a worried look on her face. “What? Why not?” Lani asked as she raised her voice a little. “The tribe that has your aunt and uncle is our enemy. It may take some negotiation and time to get you and your Flora & Fauna 291 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 family back together,” Chief Akamai said as he put his hand on Lani’s shoulder. “For now, you will be staying with us,” he continued. “Yeah! You can sleep in my room, Lani. Is that okay, dad?” Kailani asked jumping up and down. Kailani’s dad nodded and she pulled Lani’s hand, guiding her to her room. Lani had a smile on her face and followed Kailani. Her room was beautiful. There were vines and flowers growing on her ceiling and birds sitting on her window. “This is beautiful, Kailani,” Lani said as she admired the ceiling. “Thanks. Oh! I have to show you something. It’s in the jungle.” Kailani ran out the door with Lani trailing behind. After about three minutes, Kailani stopped in an open space with the sunlight shining onto the spot. She sat down on her knees holding a beautiful pink flower. Her hand was on her lap as she looked at the flower. Lani came to sit next to her and crisscrossed applesauced her legs. Kailani looked up at her and put the flower in Lani’s hair behind her ear. “There. Now we are officially friends. In my culture, a beautiful flower symbolizes a long lasting friendship,” Kailani said as she sat back down in her spot. Lani pushed her long hair behind her back and thanked Kailani. They both stood up and walked to the beach together as they talked about what they like to do. Kailani showed all the native plants of the island to Lani. The two girls made it to the beach and sat down on a nearby log. “I forgot to ask, but how old are you?” Lani asked as Kailani began to sit. “I’m ten years old. What about you?” “I’m twelve years old. Can you tell me about your family?” Flora & Fauna 292 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “Well my father became chief after his uncle died in battle. My mother was taken by the other tribe and killed and that is why my father’s tribe is enemies with them. I have no siblings and all the other kids in my tribe are either too young or too old. What about you?” “My parents died in a car crash when I was four so I don’t remember much about them. Ever since then I’ve lived with my aunt and uncle. I’m also an only child and I am homeschooled, so I don’t really have any close friends.” The girls sat there in silence for a while until a young man came and called them to come back to the tribe. They quickly got up and ran to the tribe. Everyone was evacuating and homes were on fire. Women were screaming and men with spears were marching down the roads. Kailani was scared and confused until she saw her father on the ground, wounded. She quickly ran to him and tried to help him get up. Lani ran up to him and helped him up too. She looked at Kailani with tears in her eyes. They slung his arms over their shoulders and dragged him to their home. Once they got home, Kailani asked, “Why did they come?” “They came for Lani,” he said as he lifted his arm to point at her. Lani looked at him and then looked at Kailani. She looked outside and saw men marching into every house. Chief Akamai told the two girls to run to the forest and hide there until it was safe. Chief told them to stay there until someone retrieves them. Kailani refused to leave without him, but he insisted and Lani put her hand on her shoulders as she let her head hang. Lani and Kailani slowly walked to the door and looked out for any of the other tribe’s men. When it was clear, they made a run for it to the woods and crossed the bridge. Lani could see tears begin to roll down her cheeks as they hid behind a bush. Flora & Fauna 293 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “It will be fine. In a while, we will get your dad back,” Lani said as she rubbed Kailani’s back in comfort. They waited there for about two and a half hours until they heard no more screaming and cries. Lani and Kailani made their way back to the village to see everything destroyed. Kailani ran back to her house to see her father gone. An elderly man walked from a small shack near the house. He told them that the other tribe took her father. “We must go there and save my father and your family,” Kailani said with her fists tight. She stomped out of the house and Lani tried to stop her. “It is too dangerous, Kailani,” Lani said. “But he is the only family I have left. And don’t you want to save your aunt and uncle too?” Lani looked down and back up at her and nodded. Kailani nodded back and settled down to make a plan on how to get their family back. After discussing their plan, they headed west of the village. The girls waited until dusk to make their move. The girls were to sneak into the prison of the village and find their families there. Without getting caught, they would help their families escape. But it wasn’t that easy. The girls put on a disguise by wrapping fabric over their heads, which covered the sides of their faces. They changed clothes so they wouldn’t be recognized. They were able to pass through the streets of the village and get to the prison. The guards at the door of the prison asked why they wanted to be allowed in. “I am a granddaughter of a prisoner. I wanted to say hello to him on his birthday,” Kailani said tilting her head down a little so the men wouldn’t see her face. “Alright. But you only have ten minutes.” She said her thanks to them and was escorted inside. She went to the cell where her father was and the cell next to it held Lani’s aunt and uncle’s. Flora & Fauna 294 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Lani was still outside with a wagon. The wagon was to carry the families and hide them from the guards. In the back, there were guards making sure no prisoner can escape. She needed to convince them to let her pass. “Sir, my pet pig escaped from his pen and I cannot find him. People say that he ran around here. May I go check?” she asked with a sad look on her face. “Okay, but you only have twenty minutes.” Lani pulled her wagon in and started to call for her pig. But she actually went to the two cell windows with her family and the chief. She grabbed a rock and cracked the windows open. She first opened the window with her aunt and uncle, they crawled out into the wagon, crouching down to hide. Lani then opened the window to the chief. The chief climbed out and got in the wagon. Lani pulled a blanket over them to hide them. Kailani exited the hallway and went to the back of the prison. She told the guards that she was helping her sister find her pet pig. They let her pass and she helped Lani pull the wagon to the streets of the village. Quietly, they passed the walls of the villages and went deep into the forest. It was still dark but the moonlight shone through gaps in the trees. Her aunt and uncle got out of the wagon and hugged Lani as tight as they could without hurting her. Kailani’s father was still sore from his wounds, but was happy to see his daughter again. They went back to their old village to see if there were any survivors left. They found about 40 villagers alive and then moved eastward, farther away from the other tribe. There, they created a new and safer village. Lani and her aunt and uncle stayed on the island because they had no idea how to get back. They also befriended Chief Akamai and Kailani. “Lani, do you know how you came to our land?” asked Chief Akamai. Flora & Fauna 295 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “No. All I can remember was that a huge wave crashed on to our home in Kauai. Then I woke up on the beach here,” replied Lani. “That’s strange. Maybe there is a reason why you came. Fate must have brought you here. But for now we shall live in peace and harmony.” Kailani, her dad, Lani and her aunt and uncle lived happily ever after. The Control Room Marcus Ma - 7 th The heat simmered in the air. Above, the numerous tree branches blocked the sky, but sunlight still managed to seep through the cracks. There were signs of life everywhere - ant hills littered the ground, birds were scattered throughout the trees, and the buzz of insects could be heard from miles away. However, I was not looking for any animals, but for my partner, Fred, who had gone scavenging for food during the night. He was supposed to have come back at dawn, but the sun was already approaching its zenith and there were no signs of his return. To venture out into the jungle to search for him was madness, though. The jungle was huge and nothing could distinguish one tree from another. I could barely have been able to walk a few hundred yards without losing my path. After a couple of minutes, I heard a rustling in the branches behind me. I turned around and saw Fred crawling on the ground, with bloody stains all over his body. I quickly carried him to a river nearby, and saw he was Flora & Fauna 296 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 barely maintaining consciousness. This was no time to ask questions. I started treating his wounds. Large scratches and claw marks were found all across his body. I applied water to the wounds, and every time it touched his body Fred convulsed with pain. Afterwards, I rummaged through my backpack and found some bandages. The bandages were not high quality, but it would have to do for the time being. I started to pester Fred with questions, asking where he had been, why he had come back so late, and how he had been hurt. Fred was able to talk, but painfully. "I was searching through the forest and came upon a huge orangutan," he rasped. "It had huge claws, and towered over me. I figure the heat had gotten to the animal's mind." I nodded in agreement. The temperature had been on the rise the moment we stepped foot into the jungle. "I tried to run, but it chased me," he continued, "I would have died, if not for my banana gun. However, it had already struck me with its claws before the banana gun could fire." Banana guns are strange items, and were once considered the most potent weapon in the world. To load it, one simply puts a banana into the banana-shaped hole in the gun. By a series of mechanisms, the banana gun disposes of the banana and fires a banana peel toward the ground. If aimed correctly, the victim of the gun would be directly above the place where the banana peel hit the ground. The victim would then slip and fall to the ground, stunning them and potentially killing them if they fall the wrong way. Natives of Africa were the first to invent the banana gun, around 500 BC, but after discovering its power and the disasters it might cause if in the wrong hands, the natives destroyed all traces of the banana gun. Fred and I were archaeologists that were researching the subject of native African weaponry when we discovered Flora & Fauna 297 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 a prototype banana gun buried in an excavation site of ours. We had never seen anything like it, and we were the first people to hold a banana gun in over 2500 years! It took us a while to figure out how to use it, but amazingly, it still worked. It has singlehandedly protected us against all sorts of dangers. It appeared, that once again, it had saved one of our lives. Fred looked much better with his wounds wrapped in bandages. It was early in the afternoon by now, and I let Fred take a nap, considering what he had been through. When he woke up, I talked to him. "I've been thinking about this for a while now, and I think we should leave the jungle," I confided to Fred. "These beast attacks are only going to get more and more common. The heat seems to have agitated every living thing in the jungle, and it's only getting worse. And with a find as important as this banana gun, I don't think we need to do any more digging. We could transform the world's view on native African weapons!" "I agree. We've been inside this jungle for months. I doubt there is anything more we can find," added Fred. We decided on leaving the next morning. The rest of the day was calm, and both Fred and I rested. When the next morning arose, we packed all of our supplies, about four days worth of food, into our backpacks. We probably would not have needed all of that, since we were near the outskirts of the jungle, and it was a day's walk to the nearest village. It was late in the evening by the time we could see the end of the jungle. A village of about 500 people called Loudima stood about two miles away. We stayed there before heading out of the jungle entirely. Fred and I decided to pitch camp on the outskirts of the town, and enter the village in the morning. Entranced by the seemingly endless patterns of stars in the sky, I soon fell asleep. Flora & Fauna 298 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 The first thing I noticed when I woke up was the heat. It was considerably hotter than in the jungle, and I quickly took off all of the layers I wore for the night. Fred noticed how hot it was too, and was constantly drinking from his water bottle. We set out for Loudima and reached it by noon. The sun blazed down relentlessly and Fred and I had been drenched in sweat for hours. Fred and I entered the village, but the streets were empty. No lights were on in any of the houses; in fact, there were no signs of people living here at all. I came up to a house and knocked on the door. There was no answer. After a couple of minutes of waiting, I opened the door and stepped inside. Barely anything was in there, except for a few stray magazines and empty boxes. Fred and I checked a couple more houses, and they were all in the same state. I came to the conclusion that the people of Loudima had hastily evacuated, but for what reason I knew not. Fred was just as baffled as I was. We decided to stay the night then head out north to another village some 100 miles away called Bafwasende. It would take us a good four solid days of hiking to get there at a steady pace. Luckily, we found some food and water left in Loudima that was still edible. We also managed to find a change of clothes for the trip. When morning came, it was even hotter than the previous day. The only thing I wanted to do was lie in bed with a cool glass of water, but we had to start our hike to Bafwasende. The road was uneventful, and the only thing that littered the side of the road were some shrubs that looked like they were dying. It was as flat as the eye could see. Occasionally some birds would dart by, but other than that the only things that we could see were the brown dust and the road. The first day ended late in the evening, our muscles aching and our spirits down. The second day was just the same; somehow it felt even hotter than before. Early in the afternoon we could spot the Flora & Fauna 299 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 village of Bafwasende in the horizon; it was still a good fifty miles away, though. Finally, in the morning of the fourth day, we reached Bafwasende. The town of Bafwasende looked identical to the town of Loudima. We entered the village and it seemed that everyone here had left, as well. However, as we entered one house, we saw an elderly man hobble through the streets with a look of surprise on his face. We approached him and started speaking. "Who are you?" he asked with a raspy voice. "We're archaeologists who came from the town of Loudima. We were wondering where everyone had gone," Fred answered. "Ah. It's a long story. Scientists from Canada say that everywhere near the equator will soon become a desert wasteland, thanks to the increasing heat that has been occurring over the last week. The cause was unexpected and it is unknown as to why this is happening. People were afraid and pretty much everybody who lived near the equator evacuated to Russia or Canada. Even those countries are beginning to warm up. I decided to stay here in Bafwasende. I was born and raised here, and I refuse to move anywhere else." Well, that pretty much clarified all the mysteries that had been going on. We thanked the old man and agreed to continue moving north and out of Africa. If we were lucky, we might be able to make it out of Africa before it gets too hot. We spent the rest of the day in Bafwasende, and continued north the next day. Early afternoon that day, we discovered a door. That was it, a door in the middle of the road. It wasn't even a very fancy door; the teal paint was chipping, and the doorknob was beginning to rust. It was perfectly ordinary, until it was opened. When opened, inside the door frame was a room. It looked well furnished with advanced technology inside. It seemed like the kind Flora & Fauna 300 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 of place to have the "Authorized Personnel Only" sign plastered across the walls. But Fred and I figured we had nothing to lose, so we entered through the door. The room was pretty big, about forty feet wide and thirty feet long. In the center of the ceiling there was a sign that said, "Earth's Control Room," and flashed those words in a cycle of various languages. The room was full of computer monitors, labeled with things such as "Next President of the Unites States," "Virulent Diseases," and "Oil Deposits." On each of these computers were a series of toggles and a keyboard. None of the buttons looked like they needed a password to use, but I was sure there must have been some security measure. I took a look at the "Oil Deposits" monitor and found a 3D map displayed on the computer, showing where the major oil deposits were in the world. There were some buttons on the side labeled "Add new deposit" or "Remove deposit." Wondering if this computer actually could control this, I decided to mouse over to the middle of the Pacific. I then pressed the "Add new deposit" button. As soon as I touched the button, an alarm started ringing, and before we knew it, Fred and I were surrounded by guards that appeared from thin air. "Unwarranted trespassing. Penalty, death," one of them said, and the guards started advancing towards us. Out of desperation, I pulled out the only weapon I had, the banana gun. As soon as the guards saw it, they started cowering in fear. I heard mutterings about "the holy weapon" and "does he realize its true power?" The guard who appeared to be the leader spoke. "We shall leave you to your own devices, as long as you refrain from firing that weapon." They disappeared, looking as if they had melted into the walls. Once again, the banana gun had saved our lives. I took a look around, and noticed a computer monitor labeled Flora & Fauna 301 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 "Lottery ticket numbers." I made a mental note of next week's winning numbers. I now realized what was causing the extreme heat waves on the Earth. "Fred, look for a monitor labeled 'Temperature' or something along those lines," I told him. It took us a while, and I discovered important information on these monitors which I shall not divulge. Eventually, Fred found the computer monitor that influenced temperature. When I took a look at it, the knob that controlled heat was cranked up to the max. (I saw that someone had also turned down drastically the precipitation levels along the West Coast - but I decided not to change that). I searched on the computer and pressed the "Reset to default" button and the heat knob turned down dramatically. I decided not to interfere with any other monitors, not knowing the damage it might cause. Fred and I went to the exit and walked back through the door. I experienced a dizzy sensation, and the next moment I found myself in Hollywood Boulevard, Los Angeles. A news bulletin through a shop window caught my eye. The major heat waves had mysteriously disappeared, and everything was back to normal. Fred and I sighed with relief. * * * We told our story many times, but nobody ever believed us. Fred and I both now live very prosperously, thanks to my "luck" with the lottery that week. With our discovery of the banana gun, the whole history community was changed. On a totally unrelated note, Indonesia has just found a deposit of oil in the Pacific so large it can sustain its economy for over a hundred years, according to some research just conducted. Fred and I visit each other from time to time, and we both fantasize about what else could have been in that control room, and who could have been so powerful to be able to build something like that. Flora & Fauna 302 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Karthy Sajeev - 7 Flora & Fauna th 303 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Hurricane Askwith Juliet Kuhlmann - 7 th Scarlet Rivera always hoped for a normal day. But when you live in a ghost town in upper Maine, everyday is always everything but normal. Scarlet's family couldn't afford to live in the nice cities that were nearby, so they settled for a small, one story house, in a town called Askwith along the coast that had been abandoned a few decades before. The town had been abandoned for mysterious reasons, but Scarlet's family didn't mind and her father worked in a sawmill only ten minutes away. Scarlet's family had lived in Askwith since Scarlet was three, however her mother came down with a horrible illness when she was eight, and had since passed away. Five years later, Scarlet and her father were still living in Askwith, and were still the only ones living there. It was summer break and Scarlet's father was at work. Scarlet walked along the railroad tracks that went through the town until she came to a dark well that marked the edge of the town. She looked at all the buildings with the dark windows and all the buildings that had just caved in on themselves. She wondered what had happened in this town. “Well...” she said to herself “I've got nothing better to do.” So Scarlet turned around and walked home, where she turned on her laptop and spent at least two hours on the Internet trying to get more information on what had happened, but everything online just repeated the same story that the man who sold them the house had said. She knew that someone must know what actually happened. Scarlet picked up her backpack and went outside, making sure to lock the door behind her, as if someone would actually rob a house in a ghost town. She mounted her bike and rode to Rockwood, the nearest town. Flora & Fauna 304 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 She rode through the town and compared the buildings there to the buildings where she lived. She rode until she came to a pharmacy that had clean automatic sliding doors and windows that were covered with advertisements for certain vaccines. There was a stack of newspapers right next to the sliding doors. The cover read, “Askwith Disaster Repeating?” This made her stop. She picked up the newspaper and walked into the pharmacy to purchase it. She walked up to the man at the front counter. “Pretty insane, yeah?” he said as he scanned the back of it. “First, it wipes out half of Askwith and now it's back to finish off the poor old town. Good thing everyone abandoned it before it was turned to rubble by part two.” Scarlet looked up at this. She was surprised that she was able to get more information out of small talk with a cashier, than two hours of scouring the Internet. “I'm sorry,” she said, “But what was the disaster in Askwith?” “You must be new to this area,” he replied, “About twenty seven years ago, a massive, never before seen hurricane hit Askwith, which used to be a big, bustling city. Of course now it's just a small ghost town that no one ever visits. Anyway, the cyclone was so bizarre because it was as if the hurricane purposely stopped in the middle of the town and just disappeared. Some say that during the hurricane, the water turned a strange bleak, gray color and once the cyclone passed, the water turned blue again. As for the people, there was no one to be seen and not a single body was found. It was so unnatural that they named it Hurricane Askwith and even today no one knows why it happened the way it did.” “And when do they predict the hurricane will repeat itself?” Scarlet asked. “They say it's only a matter of days, but I don't think it's anything to worry about,” he said, shrugging as if it was no big deal. Flora & Fauna 305 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Scarlet's first idea was to run home and tell her father, so she adjusted her backpack on her shoulder and rushed out the door. She was about to mount her bike when the cashier came running out of the pharmacy, carrying the newspaper she had completely forgotten about. “Hey, you forgot this,” he said, panting. And then he jogged back to the pharmacy, where he disappeared behind the automatic doors. Scarlet shoved the newspaper in her backpack and rode back to Askwith. She walked her bike behind the house to park it in the garage. Just when she was about to walk out and go into the house, she felt a hard, cold metal object hit her ankle. She looked down and saw that it was a door handle to some sort of basement. She dusted off the handle with the edge of her shirt and lifted the handle. The small square door that led underground was heavier than she expected, and she had to grab a shovel to prop it up. After grabbing a flashlight, Scarlet slowly made her way down the cement stairs to a small square room that seemed more like a bunker. She flicked on the flashlight and scanned the room. The walls were a plain gray cement and there were large spiderwebs in every corner. One wall particularly caught Scarlet's attention. She walked over to it and saw the words Abandon all hope poorly etched into the cement. Scarlet was in the middle of running her fingertips over the words when she heard her dad call her name from inside the house. She turned around and walked back up the stairs after taking one last look at the words on the wall. She removed the shovel from the doorway and headed out of the garage. When she walked in the door of the house, she found her dad carefully placing two logs in the fireplace. She walked up behind him with her hands in her pockets. “I went to Rockwood today and found this,” she pulled the newspaper out of her backpack and held it in front of him. Flora & Fauna 306 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 He stood up and read the small article about Askwith. “Hmm,” he said, frowning. “The cashier who rang it up for me said that he didn't think it was anything to worry about, but maybe we should leave town for a week or something just in case,” she said. “Nah,” he said, putting the newspaper on the kitchen table. “They're probably just making things up, but I'll see what some people at work think about it.” “'Kay,” she said, still not sure if he should be taking it so lightly, but she let it go. After they ate dinner, Scarlet's father made a fire. He went to bed early, but Scarlet stayed in front of the fireplace and sat with her arms around her legs and her head on her knees. She spent the whole time staring out the window at the night sky as if she would be wiped out if she let her guard down. It never occurred to her how eerie Askwith was until she heard what happened. She could tell that it was raining. She got up and walked to the back door to get another log from the porch. As soon as she opened the door and took a step outside, the wind nearly knocked her off her feet. The rain pounded against her face and she immediately went back inside. She knew that there was no point in using a wet log in the fire, so she changed into her pajamas and put her wet clothes into the laundry basket. She knew that she wouldn't get a good night's sleep, so she stayed up doing research on how to detect a hurricane and what to expect as the outcome. Flora & Fauna 307 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 When she woke up in the morning, it was still raining and windy, but much less extreme than the previous night. She heard her dad coming down the hallway and when he entered the room in his pajamas with his hair sprawling out from his head, he gave her a puzzled look. “Did you sleep here?” he asked, in the middle of a yawn. “Yeah, I guess,” she said, stretching her arms out in front of her. Her dad looked out the window and frowned at the weather. “Trust me, it was much worse last night,” she said, getting up to make breakfast. “I hope you're not paranoid just because of that newspaper,” he said. “I've gotta head in to work early today. Bill caught the flu, so my manager needs me to double my work load.” Her dad then walked back to his room to get changed while Scarlet ate her breakfast. By the time she had finished, her dad was already dressed and heading out the door. Scarlet watched her dad get into his big rusty truck and drive off. She made her way back to the kitchen, where she turned on the news. The reporter was talking about the hurricane and recommending the local people to be ready to seek shelter. She watched the news until the reporter moved on to another subject. Scarlet glanced out the window again and could tell that the weather wasn't right. It had been stormy in Maine before, but she had never experienced what she had gone through the night before. She knew that her dad had to know that this was more serious than he thought. She walked over to the phone sitting on a counter next to the TV, where she dialed her father's phone number. It rang twice before he answered. “Hey, hon,” he said. “You okay?” Flora & Fauna 308 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 “Hi, dad,” she replied. “I don't think that they were lying about the hurricane, so could you come home early?” “I just got to the mill,” he said. “So I can't exactly come home early, but I'll check in on you on my afternoon break, okay?” “Fine,” she said, and hung up. Scarlet spent the next few hours just doing chores and working on summer projects. Anything that kept her mind off of the weather worked. However, by the time noon rolled around, the weather hadn't improved. It had just gotten worse. She finally decided to take an umbrella and head to the beach to get a closer look. It was about a five minute walk and when she got there, she stood as close to the ocean as she could without getting her shoes soaked. In the distance she could see a massive body of dark clouds and wind creeping towards the shore. Scarlet sprinted home. She was about to grab the phone and dial her dad again, but the phone rang first, so she answered it. “Hello?” “Hi, Miss, I called to inform you that you need to leave before the hurricane hits,” said a man's voice that she didn't recognize. It was an eerie voice that made her uneasy. “You only have about half an hour to try and get out of there.” And he hung up, just like that. Scarlet dialed her father's cell phone, but it went to voice mail. Then she tried dialing the mill, but no one answered. She kept glancing out of the window and watching the hurricane move closer towards the beach. She left five messages for her dad before she gave up. Now the hurricane was only a couple of yards away from the beach. Scarlet looked at the clock. She had fifteen minutes to get out of there. She ran to her room and grabbed her backpack and stuffed it with a water bottle, a granola bar, a flashlight, a change of clothes, and a jacket. She then went into her dad's room and took the cordless phone from her dad's Flora & Fauna 309 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 nightstand. She then went back into the living room, where she saw that she had a little over five minutes to bolt. But before she could sprint out the door, the living room phone rang. She ran to it and picked up the phone. “Scarlet?” her dad's voice sounded panicked and worried. “Hey, Dad,” she said, trying to talk as fast as she could so she could leave. “Are you at the house and are you okay?” he asked, sounding a little relieved. “Yeah, I'm at the house and I'm fine,” she replied. “Okay, I'm almost at the house,” he said. “I'll pick you up and we'll drive to Greenville, okay?” “You only have five minutes, Dad,” she said, starting to panic herself. “I know, just be ready to go by the time I get there,” he said, and he hung up. Scarlet turned off the lights and ran out the door, looking for his car coming down the road. After waiting on the porch for a few minutes, she could hear her dad's noisy truck coming, but the hurricane was almost on top of her. When she finally saw her dad's red truck, it was too late and the hurricane had blocked the road, her dad's truck out of sight. Scarlet knew she had to find shelter somewhere, so she ran to the garage, immensely slowed down by the wind, and opened the door to the bunker. She let the heavy wooden door slam down shut just before she heard the garage above her get demolished. All she could hear was deafening crashes and the howling wind, so she just curled herself into a ball in the corner of the small room and sat in the darkness, waiting for it all to be over. When she woke up, she was lying on the cold cement of the bunker, using her backpack as a pillow. She opened it and dug out her jacket. Once she shrugged her jacket on, she walked up to the door and tried hard to push it open. Flora & Fauna 310 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 There was so much debris covering it that she had to try three times before she was able to open it. Just as she expected, there was nothing left of the town except the dark well that she would occasionally visit. She carefully walked through the wreckage to what was left of her house. Some of the fireplace was still intact, but that was about it. She didn't bother to sift through the rubble because she knew that she had to find her dad first. She ran to where she last saw his truck, but instead of finding it, she found scraps and pieces of the truck scattered across what used to be Askwith. She decided to run to Rockwood to get help finding her dad. By the time she reached Rockwood, however, all of the buildings were dark, but none were damaged. She jogged past the pharmacy and the grocery store until she came to the local hospital, the only building that she could see people in. She ran through the automatic sliding doors and up to the counter and asked the receptionist about her dad. She watched as the receptionist typed on her computer for a few seconds until she responded. “He's in room 2,” the receptionist said. “You can take a seat in the waiting room and wait for the nurse to call you in.” Scarlet nodded and walked to the waiting room, where she saw the cashier from the pharmacy sitting quietly in one of the seats. She walked up to him and asked him why he was there. “I was about to evacuate with the rest of the people,” he said. “But I saw your dad head into Askwith in his truck and I followed him in my car to tell him to leave. Your dad stopped his car just before the hurricane blocked the road and just before it demolished his truck, he jumped out and stumbled to the ground. I got out of my car and had to carry him into the passenger seat. I got back in my car and screeched out of there as fast as I could and drove your dad to the Rockwood hospital.” Flora & Fauna 311 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 A man in a white coat with a name tag then told Scarlet that she could go see her dad. Scarlet thanked the cashier and followed the doctor to room 2. “He broke three ribs and his leg, but he should be able to walk in about a week,” the doctor said, reading off of his clipboard. “Thanks,” she replied, looking at her dad, who was wrapped in bandages and a cast. Scarlet spent the next two weeks nursing her dad back to health. They moved to Greenville and lived in an apartment that also overlooked the gray beach. Scarlet visited the old gray well that had survived through the hurricane and wondered why, out of everything else in the town, it was the last thing standing. One day, after school, she went to visit the well. She looked down into the dark abyss, where she saw a faint purple light that she had never noticed or even seen before. She picked up a pebble and dropped it into the darkness towards the purple light. She listened to the pebble hit the bottom, but no matter how closely she listened, the sound never came. However, instead of hearing the pebble hit the ground, she saw the deep purple light growing brighter, getting closer. She took a step away from the well just when the strange glow had reached the open air. Out of the strange light, she saw an eerie figure emerge and she took as many steps back as she could while still keeping the figure in sight. When the figure materialized, she noticed that it was the ghost of a man dressed in old fashioned clothes that were smeared with blood. His hair was ruffled and his pants were torn at the bottoms just above his buckled shoes Flora & Fauna 312 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 caked with mud. He wore a tattered waistcoat and Scarlet could almost see perfectly through him if it weren't for the purple outline of his features and body. Scarlet slowly advanced toward him and when he saw her he frowned. “Why are you here?” he asked, sounding rude and disappointed.“Everyone was supposed to leave and never come back.” His voice had a strange eerie echo that Scarlet immediately recognized. “You're the man that called me and told me to leave before the hurricane hit Askwith,” she said, pointing her finger at him. “My name is Jeremy Askwith,” he said. “I am—was— the cousin of Anthony Askwith, the founder of what used to be this town.” “So, why are you a ghost?” she asked. After a long sigh, he replied,“Anthony put me in charge of building this well while he and the other townspeople began construction on the other buildings and shops that were needed. I had finished all the necessary blueprints and had begun construction on the well, which was supposed to only take a little under a week to build. However, when I was building the well, I noticed that there quite a bit of metal debris underground. I ignored this and continued my work. It was the last day of construction and I was almost finished with the well when one of the wooden bars on the ladder I had placed temporarily along the stone walls of the chasm broke. I tumbled downwards into the darkness, where I landed on a sharp piece of metal debris jutting out from the wall of the well that I figured I must have missed when I was building it. The metal shard tore my waistcoat and the underlying layers of skin and I hit the water. All I can remember after that was the searing pain of my wound and the dryness of my voice from calling for help.” He looked away for a few seconds and then continued. “Once I finally died from either blood loss or starvation, Flora & Fauna 313 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 my ghost was free to escape the darkness of the well. It didn't take me long to realize that even after I had been missing for five days, no one in town seemed to notice and those who had, didn't seem to care. It made me so angry to know that not even my family had enough time in their busy schedule to at least go looking for me or give me a funeral. My own cousin never even mentioned my name for the next year. I grew so angry that I cursed the town of Askwith to an eternity of suffering. Every twenty five years that not a single soul said my name or mentioned me in the newspaper, a horrible hurricane like no other would engulf a section of the town. Of course, the townspeople would try to rebuild it and each time they did, another hurricane would just demolish more than the last. I destroyed all the hard work that had prevented anyone from acknowledging my absence, but even now that the town is no more, I still don't feel satisfied.” Scarlet took a few moments to think. “What if I made this well the equivalent of your tombstone? Would that put your soul to rest or something?” “I'm not sure,” he replied quietly. “Maybe.” So Scarlet asked him when he was born and when he died and promised to return in a few days. Scarlet returned to her apartment in Greenville, where she asked her dad to help her make a metal plaque that read: “Askwith Well: Here lies the body of Jeremy Askwith (1854-1889) R.I.P.” Scarlet walked back to the well four days after making the plaque, which was tucked safely in her backpack. When she approached the well, she expected the spirit to be waiting for her, but he wasn't. She took one last glance around to see if he would appear, still no sign of him. She then pulled the metal plaque out of her backpack and used the two thin bars of metal fixed on the back of it to adjust it to the rim of the well's gray stones. She tilted the plaque Flora & Fauna 314 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 upward just enough so it would catch the light and took a step back to examine her work. After another minute of waiting for the ghost of Jeremy Askwith to appear, Scarlet took a synthetic white rose that she bought at the pharmacy out of her backpack and carefully placed it on the rim of the plaque. Scarlet walked away and by the next time she visited the well, the once white rose had turned a deep, purple color. No one bothered to rebuild the town because the people figured it was a lost cause, but the well stayed. And Scarlet never saw the spirit again and the hurricane never returned to Askwith. Lauren Yeh - 7 th Jessica Lama - 7 Flora & Fauna th 315 Flight of the Phoenix: Vol. 6 Isabelle Anderson - 7 Flora & Fauna th 316